Selected quad for the lemma: hand_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
hand_n heaven_n place_n right_a 5,096 5 6.6111 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A45436 A paraphrase and annotations upon all the books of the New Testament briefly explaining all the difficult places thereof / by H. Hammond. Hammond, Henry, 1605-1660. 1659 (1659) Wing H573B; ESTC R28692 3,063,581 1,056

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

5._o l._n 6._o of_o matienus_n a_o servant_n sub_fw-la furca_fw-la diu_fw-la virgis_fw-la caesus_fw-la erat_fw-la &_o sestertio_fw-la voeniit_fw-la he_o be_v scourge_v and_o then_o sell_v and_o so_o it_o be_v ordinary_a to_o bind_v to_o a_o pillar_n or_o post_n and_o scourge_v man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o artemidorus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v bind_v to_o a_o pillar_n he_o receive_v many_o stripe_n from_o hence_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o notion_n of_o his_o scourge_v be_v that_o of_o a_o light_a punishment_n to_o release_v he_o from_o a_o great_a and_o that_o as_o john_n set_v it_o inflict_v on_o he_o before_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v pronounce_v against_o he_o though_o when_o that_o be_v do_v he_o be_v fain_o to_o gratify_v they_o by_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o their_o fury_n to_o be_v crucify_v also_o and_o so_o the_o place_n both_o in_o matthew_n and_o mark_n may_v well_o be_v render_v mat._n 27._o 26._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v scourge_v jesus_n that_o be_v former_o have_v do_v so_o he_o proceed_v far_o and_o deliver_v he_o to_o be_v crucify_v and_o so_o in_o mark_n c._n 15._o 15._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o deliver_v jesus_n have_v scourge_v he_o have_v do_v so_o before_o he_o thus_o deliver_v he_o to_o be_v crucify_v and_o this_o sort_n of_o scourge_v be_v a_o punishment_n usual_a among_o the_o jew_n for_o offence_n not_o capital_a see_v note_v on_o 2_o cor._n 11._o b._n a_o four_o sort_n of_o scourge_v there_o be_v for_o capital_a crime_n whip_v to_o death_n with_o the_o head_n fasten_v to_o the_o furca_fw-la which_o suetonius_n in_o nerone_n call_v supplicium_fw-la more_fw-it majorum_fw-la the_o old_a roman_a punishment_n but_o this_o can_v belong_v to_o this_o place_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 29._o bless_a be_v the_o barren_a this_o expression_n of_o the_o day_n approach_v that_o they_o shall_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bless_a be_v the_o barren_a etc._n etc._n have_v certain_o its_o completion_n in_o what_o befall_v jerusalem_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o siege_n but_o more_o particular_o it_o may_v refer_v to_o one_o passage_n after_o that_o titus_n have_v encompass_v the_o city_n with_o a_o wall_n so_o that_o none_o can_v come_v out_o to_o forage_v they_o be_v force_v to_o feed_v on_o dung_n say_v josephus_n on_o shoe_n and_o girdle_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o want_v of_o such_o provision_n as_o this_o one_o marry_o a_o noble_a and_o rich_a woman_n daughter_n of_o eleazar_n bereave_v of_o all_o by_o the_o seditious_a kill_v her_o suck_a child_n and_o dre_v it_o and_o eat_v part_n of_o it_o and_o the_o soldier_n break_v in_o upon_o she_o and_o find_v a_o part_n leave_v go_v away_o in_o detestation_n and_o present_o the_o news_n of_o it_o go_v over_o the_o whole_a city_n 8._o and_o every_o one_o say_v *_o josephus_n look_v upon_o it_o with_o horror_n and_o with_o the_o same_o compassion_n as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v it_o themselves_o then_o be_v this_o speech_n fit_a for_o they_o to_o take_v up_o on_o hear_v this_o horrible_a news_n bless_a be_v the_o barren_a and_o the_o womb_n that_o never_o bear_v and_o the_o pap_n that_o never_o give_v suck_v in_o comparison_n to_o those_o that_o be_v force_v to_o feed_v on_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o womb_n and_o devour_v their_o own_o suck_a infant_n and_o then_o that_o which_o follow_v if_o they_o do_v these_o thing_n on_o a_o green_a tree_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v on_o a_o dry_a may_v perhaps_o be_v best_a interpret_v in_o relation_n to_o this_o particular_a fact_n also_o of_o that_o noble_a and_o rich_a woman_n marry_o if_o such_o horrible_a thing_n befall_v the_o wealthy_a among_o you_o what_o a_o dismal_a state_n shall_v all_o other_o be_v involve_v in_o this_o may_v possible_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o phrase_n but_o if_o not_o then_o in_o that_o other_o notion_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a it_o may_v have_v have_v its_o completion_n also_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 32._o malefactor_n these_o malefactor_n crucify_v with_o jesus_n be_v thief_n and_o murderer_n and_o author_n of_o a_o uproar_n in_o the_o city_n which_o be_v a_o evidence_n among_o other_o former_o mention_v see_v note_n on_o mat._n 27._o d._n and_o on_o mar._n 15._o a._n of_o christ_n death_n be_v after_o the_o roman_a not_o jewish_n manner_n for_o the_o jewish_a custom_n be_v never_o to_o put_v to_o death_n two_o malefactor_n on_o the_o same_o day_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o crime_n so_o say_v maimonides_n sanhed_n c._n 14._o they_o never_o condemn_v more_o than_o one_o in_o a_o day_n but_o one_o to_o day_n another_o to_o morrow_n unless_o they_o they_o be_v both_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o transgression_n and_o deserve_v one_o death_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o that_o crime_n of_o the_o other_o two_o be_v clear_a by_o his_o inscription_n which_o say_v it_o be_v for_o pretend_v to_o be_v king_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 45._o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o which_o be_v here_o say_v of_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v be_v so_o render_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v take_v adverbial_o for_o in_o the_o middle_n so_o as_o to_o be_v answerable_a to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o two_o part_n in_o matthew_n and_o mark._n 〈◊〉_d now_o what_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n this_o be_v be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o will_v need_v to_o be_v here_o determine_v for_o of_o this_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v two_o veil_n or_o high_a wall_n intimate_v by_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o second_o veil_n v_o 3_o the_o one_o that_o cover_v or_o enclose_v the_o sanctuary_n from_o the_o eye_n and_o approach_n of_o the_o people_n who_o be_v permit_v to_o go_v no_o far_o than_o the_o court_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o only_o the_o priest_n admit_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n for_o thus_o the_o manner_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o altar_n of_o incense_n be_v within_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o thither_o the_o priest_n go_v daily_a and_o offer_a incense_n the_o people_n mean_v while_o stay_v without_o and_o pray_v every_o one_o private_o by_o himself_o the_o thing_n note_v by_o the_o silence_n in_o heaven_n for_o half_a a_o hour_n rev._n 8._o 1._o and_o those_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n for_o supply_v of_o their_o several_a want_n be_v thus_o offer_v up_o by_o the_o priest_n with_o that_o incense_n of_o his_o that_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n see_v c._n 1._o 10._o d._n but_o the_o people_n themselves_o stay_v without_o and_o may_v not_o enter_v or_o look_v in_o there_o that_o veil_n or_o wall_n or_o screen_n make_v a_o full_a separation_n of_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o as_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v enclose_v or_o separate_v from_o the_o court_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n enclose_v from_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o thither_o none_o enter_v but_o the_o high_a priest_n once_o a_o year_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o second_o veil_n that_o this_o be_v here_o mean_v be_v no_o way_n specify_v or_o deducible_a from_o any_o circumstance_n of_o the_o story_n in_o any_o of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o may_v be_v think_v most_o probable_a from_o one_o intimation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o hebrew_n c._n 10._o 20._o where_o our_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v say_v to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o christ_n by_o the_o veil_n that_o be_v his_o flesh_n there_o as_o the_o veil_n be_v make_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o be_v so_o the_o rend_n of_o the_o veil_n will_v be_v a_o fit_a solemnity_n of_o the_o pierce_a and_o crucify_a christ_n flesh_n so_o that_o veil_n be_v clear_o the_o second_o veil_n enter_v into_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holies_n v_o 19_o that_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n as_o appear_v by_o c._n 9_o 8_o and_o 12._o and_o if_o that_o be_v here_o mean_v than_o the_o significancy_n be_v not_o only_o the_o approach_a destruction_n of_o all_o the_o jewish_a rite_n but_o also_o that_o that_o unapproachable_a place_n a_o type_n of_o heaven_n be_v now_o lay_v open_a to_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v liberty_n to_o approach_v unto_o god_n in_o prayer_n allow_v to_o they_o and_o again_o that_o christ_n not_o now_o once_o a_o year_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o once_o for_o ever_o there_o to_o continue_v enter_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n that_o be_v beyond_o the_o sanctuary_n the_o common_a place_n of_o all_o the_o priest_n and_o so_o the_o type_n of_o heaven_n where_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v even_o into_o the_o inmost_a adytum_fw-la at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n far_o
it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n o_o you_o house_n of_o israel_n have_v you_o offer_v to_o i_o slay_v beast_n and_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n paraphrase_n 42._o this_o provoke_v god_n to_o forsake_v they_o to_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o to_o permit_v they_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o heart_n desire_n into_o all_o the_o madness_n they_o lead_v they_o to_o and_o so_o by_o not_o restrain_v to_o deliver_v they_o up_o to_o worship_v the_o star_n of_o heaven_n in_o stead_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v that_o god_n expostulate_v with_o they_o am._n 5._o 25._o be_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o you_o offer_v up_o in_o the_o wilderness_n all_o those_o forty_o year_n offer_v to_o i_o o_o you_o house_n of_o israel_n 43._o yea_o you_o 〈◊〉_d take_v up_o the_o note_n f_o tabernacle_n of_o moloch_n and_o the_o star_n of_o your_o god_n note_n g_o remphan_n figure_n which_o you_o make_v to_o worship_v they_o and_o i_o will_v carry_v you_o away_o beyond_o babylon_n paraphrase_n 43._o nay_o as_o the_o gross_a idolatry_n you_o set_v up_o a_o chaplet_n or_o shrine_n with_o a_o image_n in_o it_o see_v note_n on_o c._n 19_o e_fw-la and_o that_o image_n the_o image_n of_o one_o of_o the_o egyptian_a king_n under_o the_o title_n of_o mars_n and_o again_o the_o picture_n of_o saturn_n another_o planet_n denote_v another_o egyptian_a god_n and_o these_o image_n of_o these_o false_a god_n have_v be_v make_v by_o you_o on_o purpose_n to_o be_v worship_v by_o you_o which_o idolatry_n together_o with_o your_o consequent_a sin_n have_v bring_v that_o captivity_n upon_o you_o am._n 5._o 26._o 44._o 〈◊〉_d our_o father_n have_v the_o note_n h_o tabernacle_n of_o witness_n in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o he_o appoint_v speak_v unto_o moses_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v it_o according_a to_o the_o fashion_n that_o he_o have_v see_v paraphrase_n 44._o these_o father_n of_o we_o in_o the_o wilderness_n have_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n that_o be_v the_o tabernacle_n with_o the_o ark_n in_o it_o call_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n because_o of_o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n put_v there_o which_o be_v the_o testimony_n and_o evidence_n of_o god_n will_v how_o he_o will_v be_v serve_v or_o else_o the_o tabernacle_n where_o god_n promise_v to_o meet_v they_o the_o place_n where_o he_o will_v record_v his_o name_n exod._n 20._o 24._o where_o they_o be_v to_o commemorate_v his_o mercy_n to_o they_o and_o where_o he_o will_v answer_v their_o prayer_n bestow_v blessing_n on_o they_o and_o this_o build_v exact_o according_a to_o the_o pattern_n show_v moses_n by_o god_n 45._o which_o also_o our_o father_n that_o come_v after_o bring_v in_o with_o jesus_n into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d gentile_n who_o god_n drive_v out_o 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o face_n of_o our_o father_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o david_n paraphrase_n 45._o this_o their_o successor_n under_o joshua_n bring_v into_o canaan_n with_o they_o and_o so_o it_o continue_v till_o david_n time_n 46._o who_o find_v favour_n before_o god_n and_o desire_v to_o find_v a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o god_n of_o jacob._n paraphrase_n 46._o who_o have_v receive_v special_a favour_n from_o god_n desire_v earnest_o to_o build_v a_o stand_a temple_n for_o his_o service_n 47._o but_o solomon_n build_v he_o a_o house_n paraphrase_n 47._o but_o this_o temple_n be_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v build_v by_o he_o because_o though_o he_o be_v a_o very_a excellent_a person_n yet_o he_o have_v have_v great_a war_n and_o shed_v much_o blood_n 1_o chron._n 22._o 8._o &_o 28._o 3._o in_o which_o respect_n god_n will_v not_o permit_v he_o to_o have_v this_o honour_n of_o build_v the_o temple_n a_o place_n destine_v to_o all_o peaceablenesse_n purity_n and_o holiness_n this_o therefore_o be_v reserve_v for_o solomon_n who_o according_o build_v it_o in_o a_o most_o sumptuous_a manner_n 48._o howbeit_o the_o most_o high_a dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n as_o say_v the_o prophet_n 49._o heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n and_o earth_n be_v my_o footstool_n what_o house_n will_v you_o build_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n or_o what_o be_v the_o place_n of_o my_o rest_n 50._o have_v not_o my_o hand_n make_v all_o these_o thing_n 51._o you_o note_v i_o stiffnecked_a and_o uncircumcised_a in_o heart_n and_o ear_n you_o do_v always_o resist_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o your_o father_n do_v so_o do_v you_o paraphrase_n 48_o 49_o 50_o 51._o but_o sure_a god_n do_v not_o so_o dwell_v in_o this_o temple_n who_o have_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o his_o palace_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o preserve_v this_o for_o ever_o from_o be_v destroy_v when_o you_o have_v by_o crucify_a his_o son_n thus_o provoke_v his_o vengeance_n against_o you_o and_o this_o bring_v home_n stephen_n discourse_n in_o this_o chapter_n to_o the_o point_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n ch_n 6._o 14._o and_o continue_v in_o the_o rebellion_n of_o your_o father_n for_o sure_a if_o david_n bloodguiltinesse_n make_v he_o uncapable_a of_o build_v it_o you_o will_v render_v you_o uncapable_a of_o have_v it_o continue_v to_o you_o 52._o which_o of_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o your_o father_n persecute_v and_o they_o have_v slay_v they_o which_o show_v before_o of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o just_a one_o of_o who_o you_o have_v be_v now_o the_o betrayer_n and_o murderer_n 53._o who_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n f._n by_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n and_o have_v not_o keep_v it_o paraphrase_n 52_o 53._o for_o as_o your_o father_n persecute_v &_o slay_v all_o the_o old_a prophet_n which_o foretell_v the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n so_o you_o now_o he_o be_v actual_o come_v have_v betray_v and_o murder_v he_o a_o sin_n set_v out_o and_o heighten_v with_o the_o great_a aggravation_n imaginable_a whether_o we_o consider_v the_o person_n thus_o use_v by_o you_o or_o you_o that_o thus_o use_v he_o he_o the_o holy_a person_n in_o the_o world_n that_o come_v to_o be_v your_o saviour_n and_o you_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o very_a man_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o law_n be_v deliver_v by_o god_n to_o host_n of_o angel_n and_o by_o they_o deliver_v to_o you_o and_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o obey_v it_o nor_o embrace_v he_o which_o come_v to_o perfect_v that_o law_n but_o absolute_o rebel_v against_o all_o 54._o when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v ●_o cut_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o they_o gnash_v on_o he_o with_o their_o tooth_n paraphrase_n 54._o this_o whole_a sermon_n but_o especial_o the_o close_a of_o it_o foretell_v their_o destruction_n for_o their_o bloody_a sin_n wound_v they_o deep_a but_o in_o stead_n of_o produce_v contrition_n exasperate_v they_o the_o more_o and_o put_v they_o into_o a_o horrible_a rage_n against_o stephen_n and_o that_o inflame_v their_o zeal_n to_o set_v upon_o the_o ston_a of_o he_o 55._o but_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n look_v up_o steadfast_o into_o heaven_n and_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 55._o but_o he_o full_a of_o courage_n look_v up_o far_o above_o all_o fear_n of_o their_o fury_n and_o do_v so_o he_o see_v a_o appearance_n of_o angel_n about_o god_n and_o jesus_n god-man_n stand_v as_o in_o a_o posture_n of_o readiness_n to_o assist_v and_o help_v close_o by_o or_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 56._o and_o say_v behold_v i_o see_v the_o the_o heaven_n open_v and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n stand_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 56._o and_o he_o proclaim_v his_o vision_n say_v 57_o then_o they_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n and_o run_v upon_o he_o with_o one_o accord_n 58._o and_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o stone_v he_o and_o the_o witness_n lay_v down_o their_o clothes_n at_o a_o young_a man_n foot_n who_o name_n be_v saul_n paraphrase_n 57_o 58._o and_o they_o deal_v with_o he_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o zeal_n use_v among_o the_o jew_n against_o those_o that_o depart_v from_o the_o jewish_a and_o set_v up_o any_o new_a worship_n and_o first_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n then_o stone_v he_o and_o they_o that_o bring_v evidence_n against_o he_o ch_z 6._o 13._o and_o be_v therefore_o by_o law_n to_o throw_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o he_o and_o be_v therefore_o call_v executioner_n ch_n 22._o 2._o put_v off_o their_o clothes_n to_o fit_v themselves_o for_o their_o work_n and_o a_o young_a man_n call_v saul_n undertake_v to_o look_v to_o their_o clothes_n who_o consequent_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o ston_a of_o he_o ch_z 8._o 1._o
phrase_n use_v of_o zacchaeus_n lu._n 19_o 3._o and_o so_o note_v this_o james_n to_o have_v be_v about_o zacchaeus_n size_n or_o pitch_n and_o and_o so_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o other_o of_o that_o name_n who_o it_o shall_v seem_v be_v not_o so_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 43._o counsellor_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d counsellor_n here_o be_v matter_n of_o some_o question_n most_o probable_a it_o be_v that_o it_o import_v one_o of_o the_o decuriones_fw-la place_v by_o the_o roman_n in_o their_o colony_n or_o province_n so_o say_v fornerius_n decuriones_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dicebantur_fw-la quòd_fw-la consilii_fw-la gratià_fw-la allegerentur_fw-la the_o decuriones_fw-la be_v call_v counsellor_n because_o they_o be_v choose_v to_o give_v counsel_n so_o the_o old_a greek_a and_o latin_a lexicon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d decurio_fw-la curialis_fw-la so_o the_o old_a glossarie_a decurio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o what_o the_o decurio_fw-la be_v we_o find_v in_o the_o digest_v lib._n 5●_n tit._n 16._o de_fw-la verbor_fw-la signif_n leg_n 239._o §_o 5._o decuriones_fw-la dictos_fw-la aiunt_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la quòd_fw-la initio_fw-la cum_fw-la coloniae_fw-la deducerentur_fw-la decima_fw-la pars_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la ducerentur_fw-la consilii_fw-la publici_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la conscribi_fw-la solita_fw-la sit_fw-la they_o be_v so_o call_v because_o at_o the_o first_o when_o colonies_n be_v send_v out_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o sit_v as_o a_o stand_a council_n to_o manage_v affair_n and_o such_o a_o one_o at_o this_o time_n be_v joseph_n and_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o person_n of_o great_a eminence_n chap._n xvi_o 1._o and_o when_o the_o sabbath_n be_v past_a marry_o magdalen_n and_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o james_n and_o salome_n have_v buy_v sweet_a spice_n that_o they_o may_v come_v and_o anoint_v he_o paraphrase_n 1._o embalm_v 2._o and_o very_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n they_o come_v unto_o the_o sepulchre_n note_v a_o at_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n paraphrase_n 2._o when_o the_o sun_n be_v appear_v in_o their_o horizon_n 3._o and_o they_o say_v among_o themselves_o who_o shall_v roll_v we_o away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n 4._o and_o when_o they_o look_v they_o see_v that_o the_o stone_n be_v roll_v away_o for_o it_o be_v very_o great_a paraphrase_n 3_o 4._o and_o question_v one_o with_o another_o who_o shall_v roll_v away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tomb_n it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a stone_n they_o look_v up_o and_o discern_v that_o it_o be_v already_o remove_v 5._o and_o enter_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n they_o see_v a_o young_a man_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a side_n clothe_v with_o a_o long_a white_a garment_n and_o they_o be_v affright_v paraphrase_n 5._o a_o angel_n in_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o young_a man_n 6._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o be_v not_o affright_v you_o seek_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n which_o be_v crucify_v he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o behold_v the_o place_n where_o they_o lay_v he_o 7._o but_o go_v your_o way_n tell_v his_o disciple_n and_o peter_n that_o he_o go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n there_o shall_v you_o see_v he_o as_o he_o say_v unto_o you_o paraphrase_n 7._o but_o stay_v not_o here_o seek_v the_o live_n in_o a_o tomb_n but_o go_v tell_v his_o disciple_n and_o particular_o peter_n that_o according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n before_o his_o death_n c._n 14._o 28._o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o etc._n etc._n 8._o and_o they_o go_v out_o quick_o and_o 〈◊〉_d flee_v from_o the_o sepulchre_n for_o they_o tremble_v and_o be_v amaze_v neither_o say_v they_o any_o thing_n to_o any_o man_n for_o they_o be_v afraid_a 9_o now_o when_o jesus_n be_v rise_v early_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n he_o appear_v first_o to_o mary_n magdalen_n out_o of_o who_o he_o have_v cast_v seven_o devil_n paraphrase_n 8_o 9_o and_o be_v very_o much_o amaze_v and_o fright_v they_o do_v not_o declare_v this_o to_o any_o who_o they_o meet_v by_o the_o way_n but_o go_v to_o tell_v the_o apostle_n what_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o angel_n mat._n 28._o 9_o before_o they_o come_v to_o they_o jesus_n himself_o appear_v to_o they_o and_o first_o 10._o and_o she_o go_v and_o tell_v they_o that_o have_v be_v with_o he_o as_o they_o mourn_v and_o weep_v paraphrase_n 10._o those_o that_o belong_v to_o he_o that_o be_v his_o disciple_n 11._o and_o they_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o have_v be_v see_v of_o she_o believe_v not_o 12._o after_o that_o he_o appear_v in_o another_o form_n unto_o two_o of_o they_o as_o they_o walk_v and_o go_v into_o the_o country_n paraphrase_n 12._o to_o a_o village_n call_v emmaus_n lu._n 24._o 13._o 13._o and_o they_o go_v and_o tell_v it_o unto_o the_o residue_n neither_o believe_v they_o they_o 14._o afterwards_o he_o appear_v unto_o the_o eleven_o as_o they_o sit_v at_o meat_n and_o upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o unbelief_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o they_o which_o have_v see_v he_o after_o he_o be_v rise_v 15._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o note_n b_o every_o creature_n paraphrase_n 15._o all_o the_o gentile_n 16._o he_o that_o beleive_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o beleive_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v paraphrase_n 16._o and_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o you_o and_o thereupon_o become_v a_o proselyte_n or_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o desire_n and_o receive_v baptism_n the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n shall_v for_o all_o his_o former_a sin_n sincere_o repent_v of_o and_o forsake_v receive_v plenary_a pardon_n and_o upon_o perseverance_n in_o new_a life_n eternal_a bliss_n but_o he_o that_o stand_v out_o obstinate_o and_o impenitent_o shall_v be_v damn_v 17._o and_o 〈◊〉_d these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v they_o that_o believe_v in_o my_o name_n shall_v they_o cast_v out_o devil_n they_o shall_v speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n paraphrase_n 17._o and_o moreover_o for_o the_o propagate_a the_o gospel_n as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v pour_v out_o upon_o you_o and_o from_o you_o communicate_v to_o other_o and_o thereby_o you_o shall_v be_v enable_v to_o do_v miracle_n cast_v out_o devil_n speak_v strange_a language_n act._n 2._o &c._n &c._n 18._o note_n c_o they_o shall_v take_v up_o serpent_n and_o if_o they_o drink_v any_o deadly_a thing_n it_o shall_v not_o hurt_v they_o they_o shall_v lay_v hand_n on_o the_o sick_a and_o they_o shall_v recover_v 19_o so_o then_o after_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v unto_o they_o he_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 20._o and_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o preach_v every_o where_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v the_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v amen_n annotation_n on_o chap._n xvi_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 2._o at_o the_o rise_n the_o various_a reading_n in_o this_o place_n may_v deserve_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o 1._o gregory_n nyssen_n serm._n de_fw-fr resurr_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o most_o exact_a copy_n put_v in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o and_o so_o eusebius_n de_fw-fr demonstr_n euang._n l._n 10._o in_o the_o end_n reads_z 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sun_n be_v now_o rise_v and_o so_o lucas_n brugensis_n cite_v it_o out_o of_o some_o manuscript_n 2_o lie_n the_o ancient_a greek_a and_o latin_a mss_n read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o if_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o be_v join_v with_o that_o the_o plain_a sense_n will_v be_v the_o sun_n now_o rise_v or_o as_o our_o english_a at_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o so_o it_o will_v agree_v exact_o with_o s._n matthew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o day_n beginning_n to_o appear_v or_o shine_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n day_n beginning_n to_o shine_v say_v ignatius_n ad_fw-la trall_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 15._o every_o creature_n what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o signify_v be_v clear_a by_o compare_v this_o passage_n with_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o other_o gospel_n in_o s._n matthew_n with_o who_o s._n mark_v throughout_o most_o exact_o agree_v it_o be_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d go_v and_o gather_v disciple_n over_o all_o nation_n and_o immediate_o follow_v as_o here_o baptise_v th●m_n etc._n etc._n in_o s._n luke_n thus_o c._n 24_o 47._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
these_o thing_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v paraphrase_n 7._o when_o shall_v this_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v and_o with_o it_o of_o the_o jewish_a state_n and_o what_o prognostic_n of_o it_o will_v be_v discernible_a 8._o and_o he_o say_v take_v heed_n that_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n say_v 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o christ_n and_o the_o time_n draw_v near_o go_v you_o not_o therefore_o after_o they_o paraphrase_n 8._o one_o prognostic_n or_o forerunner_n of_o that_o destruction_n shall_v be_v that_o many_o deceiver_n shall_v arise_v among_o you_o each_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o that_o he_o will_v soon_o deliver_v you_o 9_o but_o when_o you_o shall_v hear_v of_o war_n and_o commotion_n be_v not_o terrify_v for_o these_o thing_n must_v first_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o the_o end_n be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o paraphrase_n 9_o another_o forerunner_n be_v that_o great_a commotion_n and_o tumult_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o judea_n before_o the_o roman_n come_v to_o destroy_v they_o utter_o see_v note_n on_o mat._n 24._o d._n 10._o then_o say_v he_o unto_o they_o 〈◊〉_d nation_n shall_v rise_v against_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n against_o kingdom_n paraphrase_n 10._o they_o shall_v rise_v up_o and_o slaughter_v one_o another_o mat_n 24._o c._n revel_v 6._o 12_o 13_o 14._o 11._o and_o great_a earthquake_n shall_v be_v in_o divers_a place_n 7._o and_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n and_o fearful_a sight_n and_o great_a sign_n shall_v there_o be_v from_o heaven_n 12._o but_o before_o 〈◊〉_d all_o these_o they_o shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o you_o deliver_v you_o up_o to_o the_o synagogue_n and_o into_o prison_n be_v bring_v before_o king_n and_o ruler_n for_o my_o name_n sake_n paraphrase_n 12._o but_o first_o they_o shall_v fall_v foul_a on_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o all_o pure_a sincere_a christian_n and_o bring_v you_o before_o the_o jewish_a consistory_n and_o roman_a governor_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n revel_v 6._o 11._o and_o mat._n 24._o 9_o 13._o and_o it_o shall_v turn_v to_o you_o for_o a_o testimony_n paraphrase_n 13._o and_o this_o bring_n of_o you_o before_o the_o gentile_a power_n shall_v be_v a_o mean_n of_o divulge_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o see_v mar._n 13._o 9_o 14._o settle_v it_o therefore_o in_o your_o heart_n not_o to_o meditate_v before_o what_o you_o shall_v answer_v paraphrase_n 14._o in_o this_o case_n remember_v what_o be_v former_o say_v to_o you_o mat._n 10._o 19_o and_o 30._o and_o belong_v peculiar_o to_o this_o point_n of_o time_n now_o speak_v of_o 15._o for_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n which_o all_o your_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o gainsay_v or_o resist_v paraphrase_n 15._o for_o i_o will_v furnish_v you_o with_o those_o answer_n and_o that_o conviction_n to_o all_o your_o adversary_n that_o they_o 16._o and_o you_o shall_v be_v betray_v both_o by_o parent_n and_o brethren_n and_o kinsfolk_n and_o friend_n and_o some_o of_o you_o shall_v they_o cause_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 17._o and_o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n for_o my_o name_n sake_n 18._o but_o there_o shall_v not_o a_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n perish_v paraphrase_n 18._o but_o whatsoever_o befall_v you_o treachery_n persecution_n death_n itself_o v_o 16._o 17._o be_v confident_a of_o this_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o rend_v to_o the_o least_o disadvantage_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o great_a gain_n to_o you_o 19_o in_o your_o patience_n possess_v you_o your_o soul_n paraphrase_n 19_o and_o though_o some_o few_o of_o you_o shall_v suffer_v death_n in_o this_o cause_n and_o so_o be_v eternal_o crown_v by_o suffering_n yet_o this_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o even_o for_o this_o life_n that_o if_o you_o endure_v with_o constancy_n and_o persevere_v and_o fall_v not_o off_o from_o your_o profession_n that_o shall_v of_o all_o other_o be_v the_o most_o probable_a way_n of_o escape_v or_o obtain_v deliverance_n from_o this_o sweep_a destruction_n mat._n 10._o 39_o mar._n 13._o 13._o 20._o and_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v jerusalem_n compass_v with_o army_n then_o know_v that_o the_o desolation_n thereof_o be_v nigh_o 21._o then_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o judea_n flee_v to_o the_o mountain_n and_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o depart_v out_o and_o let_v not_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o country_n enter_v thereinto_o 22._o for_o these_o be_v the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v may_v be_v fulfil_v 23._o but_o woe_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v with_o child_n and_o to_o they_o that_o give_v suck_v in_o those_o day_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v great_a distress_n in_o the_o land_n and_o wrath_n upon_o this_o people_n paraphrase_n 20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o but_o when_o you_o see_v jerusalem_n besiege_v by_o the_o roman_n mat._n 24._o 15._o note_n f._n than_o resolve_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o city_n be_v near_o and_o according_o all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o let_v they_o fly_v out_o of_o judea_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o confine_n or_o region_n about_o judea_n let_v they_o take_v care_v not_o to_o come_v into_o it_o but_o see_v revel_v 6._o 16._o look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o place_n most_o sad_o to_o be_v the_o destroy_v on_o which_o all_o the_o doleful_a prophecy_n be_v now_o to_o be_v fulfil_v which_o have_v be_v prophesy_v against_o judea_n 24._o and_o they_o shall_v fall_v by_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o shall_v be_v lead_v away_o note_v b_o captive_a into_o all_o nation_n and_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v tread_a down_o of_o the_o gentile_n note_n c_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v fulfil_v paraphrase_n 24._o conquer_v by_o the_o roman_n revel_v 11._o 2._o and_o while_o this_o be_v a_o do_v in_o judea_n the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v over_o the_o gentile_a world_n mat._n 24._o 14._o see_v rom._n 11._o 25._o and_o be_v by_o they_o receive_v some_o effect_n that_o shall_v have_v among_o the_o jew_n by_o way_n of_o emulation_n rom._n 11._o 11_o 13._o move_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o faith_n also_o and_o by_o their_o do_v so_o jerusalem_n shall_v again_o be_v inhabit_v by_o jewish_n as_o well_o as_o gentile_a christians_o see_v not_o on_o revel_n 11._o f._n 25._o and_o there_o shall_v be_v sign_n in_o the_o sun_n and_o in_o the_o moon_n and_o in_o the_o star_n and_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d earth_n distress_n of_o note_n d_o nation_n with_o perplexity_n the_o note_n e_o sea_n and_o the_o wave_n roar_v paraphrase_n 25._o and_o many_o prodigy_n shall_v be_v see_v in_o the_o heaven_n see_v note_n on_o rev._n 6._o f._n very_o frightful_a to_o all_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o terrible_a distress_n upon_o all_o the_o several_a part_n of_o palestine_n press_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v to_o stay_v or_o to_o forsake_v their_o country_n see_v rev._n 6._o 15_o 16._o 26._o man_n heart_n fail_v they_o through_o fear_n and_o for_o look_v after_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v come_v on_o the_o 〈◊〉_d earth_n for_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v paraphrase_n 26._o all_o man_n expect_v upon_o the_o land_n of_o judea_n judgement_n see_v note_n on_o ch_z 2._o a._n even_o a_o utter_a destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o nation_n religion_n and_o people_n 27._o and_o then_o shall_v they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o a_o cloud_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n paraphrase_n 27._o thus_o shall_v christ_n regal_a office_n in_o punish_v and_o avenge_a the_o persecutor_n of_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n be_v most_o glorious_o reveal_v see_v mat._n 13._o 26._o 28._o and_o when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o paraphrase_n 28._o and_o when_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n thus_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o let_v all_o true_a christian_n apostle_n and_o other_o that_o have_v so_o long_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o jew_n look_v up_o and_o hold_v up_o their_o head_n with_o cheerfulness_n as_o know_v that_o to_o they_o redemption_n approach_v and_o deliverance_n from_o the_o danger_n which_o encompass_v they_o see_v act._n 3._o a._n and_o rom._n 13._o b._n and_o rom._n 8._o l._n 29._o and_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o a_o parable_n behold_v the_o figtree_n and_o all_o the_o tree_n 30._o when_o they_o now_o shoot_v forth_o you_o see_v and_o know_v of_o your_o own_o self_n that_o summer_n be_v now_o nigh_o at_o hand_n paraphrase_n 30._o put_v forth_o leave_v mat._n 24._o 32._o and_o mar._n 12._o 28._o 31._o so_o likewise_o you_o when_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v know_v you_o that_o the_o
wonder_n in_o heaven_n above_o and_o sign_n in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o blood_n and_o fire_n and_o vapour_n of_o smoke_n 20._o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n before_o that_o great_a and_o notable_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v 21._o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v save_v paraphrase_n 19_o 20_o 21._o and_o after_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o fearful_a stupendous_a sight_n and_o prodigy_n and_o many_o great_a slaughter_n in_o judea_n as_o foretunner_n and_o presignification_n of_o the_o great_a famous_a destruction_n see_v mat._n 3._o 11_o 12._o which_o shall_v befall_v this_o people_n foretell_v by_o christ_n mat._n 24._o see_v heb._n 10._o a._n for_o their_o crucify_a of_o christ_n and_o from_o which_o the_o only_a way_n to_o rescue_v any_o be_v to_o repent_v and_o acknowledge_v christ_n which_o to_o gain_v man_n to_o be_v the_o design_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n joh._n 10._o 8._o 22._o you_o man_n of_o israel_n hear_v these_o word_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n a_o man_n 〈◊〉_d approve_v of_o god_n among_o you_o by_o miracle_n wonder_n and_o sign_n which_o god_n do_v by_o he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o as_o you_o yourselves_o also_o know_v paraphrase_n 22._o this_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v send_v from_o god_n by_o the_o mighty_a work_n which_o by_o he_o god_n have_v do_v among_o you_o all_o which_o you_o know_v to_o be_v true_a and_o of_o which_o you_o yourselves_o be_v witness_n 23._o he_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o determinate_a counsel_n and_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n you_o have_v take_v and_o by_o wicked_a hand_n have_v crucify_v and_o slay_v paraphrase_n 23._o he_o be_v permit_v by_o god_n to_o fall_v into_o your_o hand_n god_n withdraw_v that_o protection_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v preserve_v he_o from_o they_o and_o this_o by_o his_o decree_n that_o he_o shall_v lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n in_o order_n to_o that_o great_a design_n of_o man_n salvation_n towards_o which_o he_o do_v by_o his_o foreknowledge_n discern_v this_o the_o fit_a expedient_a you_o apprehend_v and_o crucify_v most_o wicked_o 24._o who_o god_n raise_v up_o have_v loose_v 〈◊〉_d the_o note_n c_o pain_n of_o death_n because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v of_o it_o paraphrase_n 24._o but_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o again_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o power_n of_o death_n not_o suffer_v he_o to_o continue_v dead_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v engage_v in_o this_o not_o to_o suffer_v a_o innocent_a person_n so_o unjust_o and_o unthankful_o handle_v by_o the_o jew_n to_o lie_v under_o death_n and_o beside_o many_o other_o thing_n the_o prophecy_n of_o he_o necessary_o require_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o 25._o for_o david_n speak_v concern_v he_o i_o foresee_v the_o lord_n always_o before_o my_o face_n for_o he_o be_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v paraphrase_n 25._o for_o of_o he_o say_v david_n ps_n 16._o 8._o i_o wait_v and_o look_v with_o all_o affiance_n and_o confidence_n on_o god_n for_o he_o be_v my_o defender_n so_o as_o to_o keep_v i_o from_o miscarry_v 26._o therefore_o do_v my_o heart_n rejoice_v and_o my_o tongue_n be_v glad_a moreover_o also_o my_o flesh_n shall_v rest_v in_o hope_n paraphrase_n 26._o for_o this_o my_o glory_n that_o be_v my_o tongue_n because_o that_o be_v the_o member_n the_o instrument_n of_o glorify_v god_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o my_o flesh_n shall_v rest_v confident_a 27._o because_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o 〈◊〉_d hell_n neither_o will_v thou_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n paraphrase_n 27._o for_o though_o i_o die_v yet_o shall_v thou_o not_o leave_v i_o so_o long_o dead_a as_o that_o my_o body_n shall_v be_v putrefy_a that_o be_v thou_o shall_v raise_v i_o from_o death_n before_o the_o three_o day_n be_v past_a 28._o thou_o have_v make_v know_v to_o i_o the_o way_n of_o life_n thou_o shall_v make_v i_o full_a of_o joy_n with_o thy_o countenance_n paraphrase_n 28._o thou_o have_v cheer_v i_o &_o abundant_o refresh_v i_o with_o thy_o favour_n 29._o man_n and_o brethren_n let_v i_o free_o speak_v unto_o you_o of_o the_o patriarch_n david_n that_o he_o be_v both_o dead_a and_o bury_v and_o his_o sepulchre_n be_v with_o we_o until_o this_o day_n paraphrase_n 29._o let_v i_o therefore_o speak_v to_o you_o free_o and_o without_o any_o reservedness_n see_v note_n on_o joh._n 7._o 13._o concern_v that_o david_n that_o thus_o speak_v that_o he_o die_v like_o other_o man_n and_o have_v a_o solemn_a interment_n and_o we_o still_o have_v his_o monument_n to_o show_v from_o whence_o he_o never_o rise_v 30._o be_v therefore_o a_o prophet_n and_o know_v that_o god_n have_v swear_v with_o a_o oath_n to_o he_o that_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o loin_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o christ_n to_o sit_v on_o his_o throne_n paraphrase_n 30._o and_o therefore_o not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o by_o way_n of_o prediction_n of_o the_o messiah_n know_v that_o he_o shall_v infallible_o spring_v from_o his_o loin_n that_o be_v to_o be_v prince_n and_o ruler_n of_o his_o church_n 31._o he_o see_v this_o before_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o soul_n be_v not_o leave_v in_o hell_n neither_o his_o flesh_n do_v see_v corruption_n paraphrase_n 31._o this_o speech_n of_o his_o be_v prophetic_a refer_v to_o this_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v that_o his_o foul_a shall_v not_o continue_v in_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n in_o which_o state_n though_o it_o be_v for_o a_o while_n yet_o it_o continue_v not_o so_o long_o till_o the_o body_n be_v corrupt_v that_o be_v not_o the_o space_n of_o 72_o hour_n or_o three_o day_n 32._o this_o jesus_n have_v god_n raise_v up_o whereof_o we_o all_o be_v witness_n paraphrase_n 32._o and_o according_o have_v god_n raise_v up_o christ_n within_o that_o space_n of_o time_n within_o three_o day_n and_o all_o we_o apostle_n be_v eye-witness_n of_o it_o 33._o therefore_o be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n exalt_v and_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v shed_v forth_o this_o which_o we_o now_o see_v and_o hear_v paraphrase_n 33._o be_v therefore_o assume_v to_o his_o regal_a state_n and_o office_n in_o heaven_n and_o god_n have_v perform_v to_o he_o as_o all_o his_o other_o so_o peculiar_o this_o promise_n make_v to_o he_o of_o give_v he_o power_n to_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v according_o now_o send_v he_o and_o this_o prodigy_n which_o you_o now_o see_v and_o hear_v be_v a_o effect_n of_o that_o viz._n the_o speak_n with_o tongue_n which_o the_o hour_n before_o they_o understand_v not_o 34._o for_o david_n 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o ascend_v into_o the_o heaven_n but_o he_o say_v himself_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o on_o my_o right_a hand_n 35._o until_o i_o make_v thy_o foe_n thy_o footstool_n paraphrase_n 34_o 35._o for_o this_o can_v be_v interpret_v of_o david_n himself_o though_o he_o speak_v it_o in_o his_o own_o person_n for_o he_o never_o go_v to_o heaven_n bodily_a and_o so_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v exalt_v to_o god_n right_a hand_n while_o his_o enemy_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o of_o who_o this_o be_v to_o be_v verify_v as_o of_o his_o lord_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o say_v to_o my_o lord_n psal_n 110._o 1._o 36._o therefore_o let_v all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n know_v assure_o that_o god_n have_v make_v that_o same_o jesus_n who_o you_o have_v crucify_v both_o lord_n and_o christ_n paraphrase_n 36._o this_o great_a important_a truth_n therefore_o i_o now_o proclaim_v unto_o you_o that_o that_o christ_n who_o you_o jew_n have_v crucify_v god_n the_o father_n have_v raise_v up_o and_o by_o assume_v he_o to_o his_o right_a hand_n settle_v he_o there_o as_o a_o head_n of_o his_o church_n instate_v he_o in_o the_o true_a kingly_a office_n of_o the_o messiah_n 37._o now_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o s●●●_n unto_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v paraphrase_n 37._o upon_o these_o word_n of_o peter_n they_o have_v great_a compunction_n and_o as_o man_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n to_o rescue_v themselves_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o so_o horrible_a a_o sin_n as_o crucify_a the_o messiah_n they_o cry_v out_o most_o passionate_o to_o
themselves_o with_o better_a sacrifice_n than_o these_o paraphrase_n 23._o and_o therefore_o the_o law_n command_v that_o the_o tabernacle_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o two_o part_n of_o it_o but_o especial_o the_o inmost_a part_n be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o high_a heaven_n shall_v thus_o be_v purify_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o bullock_n or_o goat_n that_o be_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v never_o enter_v in_o thither_o without_o such_o bloodshedding_n it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a and_o proportionable_a to_o these_o type_n that_o christ_n shall_v die_v shed_v his_o own_o blood_n and_o so_o enter_v into_o heaven_n to_o be_v our_o high_a priest_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o we_o through_o many_o suffering_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 24._o for_o christ_n be_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n make_v with_o hand_n which_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d figure_n of_o the_o true_a but_o into_o heaven_n itself_o now_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o we_o paraphrase_n 24._o for_o christ_n be_v not_o so_o a_o high_a priest_n as_o to_o enter_v into_o any_o holy_a place_n build_v by_o man_n the_o image_n or_o representation_n of_o signify_v heaven_n see_v wisd_v 9_o 8._o but_o into_o heaven_n itself_o there_o to_o appear_v before_o god_n as_o the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o do_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o to_o recommend_v our_o want_n and_o affair_n to_o he_o and_o negotiate_v for_o we_o and_o so_o to_o relieve_v we_o when_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o he_o 25._o nor_o yet_o that_o he_o shall_v offer_v himself_o often_o as_o the_o high_a priest_n enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n every_o year_n with_o blood_n of_o other_o paraphrase_n 25._o nor_o be_v the_o similitude_n betwixt_o he_o and_o a_o high_a priest_n to_o hold_v in_o this_o that_o as_o the_o priest_n enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n every_o year_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o bullock_n and_o goat_n so_o christ_n shall_v enter_v every_o year_n into_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n 26._o for_o then_o must_v he_o often_o have_v suffer_v since_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o now_o once_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d have_v he_o appear_v note_n h_o to_o put_v away_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o paraphrase_n 26._o for_o then_o he_o shall_v from_o time_n to_o time_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v die_v many_o time_n but_o in_o this_o his_o presenting_z himself_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n his_o go_v to_o heaven_n to_o intercede_v for_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o priest_n go_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n that_o christ_n do_v shed_v none_o but_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o that_o but_o once_o for_o all_o and_o that_o now_o in_o this_o last_o age_n see_v note_n on_o mat._n 24._o c._n this_o close_a or_o shut_v up_o of_o the_o jewish_a state_n on_o purpose_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o whatsoever_o sin_n repent_v of_o and_o to_o work_v reformation_n among_o we_o 27._o 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n once_o to_o die_v but_o after_o this_o the_o judgement_n ●_o paraphrase_n 27._o for_o in_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o christ_n like_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o other_o man_n that_o as_o they_o must_v die_v but_o once_o and_o then_o be_v judge_v to_o all_o eternity_n 28._o so_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o bear_v the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o unto_o they_o that_o look_v for_o he_o shall_v he_o appear_v the_o second_o time_n without_o sin_n b._n unto_o salvation_n faith_n paraphrase_n 28._o so_o christ_n have_v yield_v up_o himself_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o and_o so_o bear_v our_o sin_n up_o to_o the_o cross_n with_o he_o die_v as_o our_o surety_n or_o proxy_n shall_v do_v this_o but_o once_o when_o he_o come_v again_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o another_o manner_n he_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o this_o earth_n to_o die_v again_o but_o shall_v come_v in_o glory_n and_o power_n quite_o unlike_o that_o state_n wherein_o he_o be_v when_o he_o bear_v our_o sin_n to_o the_o relieve_n and_o bestow_v deliverance_n on_o those_o who_o expect_v and_o wait_v for_o he_o and_o constant_o adhere_v to_o his_o command_n annotation_n on_o chap._n ix_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 1._o first_o covenant_n that_o it_o must_v be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o without_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tabernacle_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o ancient_a mss._n as_o beside_o other_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o other_o man_n in_o a_o ancient_a one_o in_o magd._n col._n library_n in_o oxon_n and_o of_o the_o syriack_n and_o old_a latin_a translation_n and_o of_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o the_o greek_a father_n who_o read_v it_o not_o and_o then_o there_o be_v little_a doubt_n but_o the_o substantive_n to_o it_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d covenant_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o in_o the_o verse_n immediate_o precede_v this_o c_o 8._o 15._o which_o ancient_o be_v conjoin_v with_o this_o before_o the_o division_n into_o chapter_n beside_o the_o addition_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tabernacle_n will_v not_o be_v very_o congruous_a for_o then_o the_o tabernacle_n must_v be_v say_v to_o have_v in_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o worldly_a holy_a that_o be_v the_o tabernacle_n as_o appear_v v_o 3._o where_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tabernacle_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a of_o holies_n as_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ordinance_n see_v rome_n 8._o d._n 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o any_o reason_n to_o be_v take_v not_o in_o the_o genitive_fw-la but_o the_o accusative_a plural_a and_o so_o will_v note_v sacrifice_n and_o other_o institution_n for_o god_n worship_n which_o belong_v to_o that_o moysaicall_a covenant_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 4._o golden_a pot_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o some_o difficulty_n to_o determine_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o ark_n in_o which_o the_o pot_n of_o manna_n and_o the_o rod_n be_v hore_n say_v to_o be_v keep_v or_o more_o general_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n wherein_o as_o in_o a_o common_a place_n both_o they_o and_o the_o ark_n be_v for_o first_o the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o which_o may_v equal_o refer_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o tabernacle_n call_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ark_n and_o second_o it_o be_v positive_o affirm_v 1_o king_n 8._o 9_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o ark_n but_o the_o table_n of_o stone_n but_o then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o those_o table_n of_o the_o law_n be_v in_o the_o ark_n and_o therefore_o the_o mention_n of_o those_o be_v immediate_o subjoin_v to_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o pot_n and_o the_o rod_n and_o connect_v distinct_o with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o pot_n and_o the_o rod_n and_o the_o table_n in_o all_o reason_n they_o must_v be_v think_v affirm_v to_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n where_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o table_n be_v and_o 2._o it_o be_v as_o manifest_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o it_o v_o 5._o denote_v the_o ark_n on_o the_o cover_n of_o which_o and_o not_o of_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n the_o cherubin_n be_v to_o this_o difficulty_n that_o which_o theophylact_v have_v affirm_v be_v most_o satisfactory_a that_o though_o at_o that_o time_n which_o be_v refer_v to_o 1_o king_n 8._o 9_o that_o be_v in_o solomon_n time_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o ark_n but_o the_o table_n yet_o in_o aftertime_n the_o pot_n and_o the_o rod_n be_v put_v there_o viz._n in_o jeremy_n time_n when_o the_o ark_n be_v to_o be_v hide_v by_o he_o and_o all_o this_o say_v he_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v suppose_v by_o tradition_n to_o have_v have_v from_o gamaliel_n his_o master_n a_o pharisee_fw-mi and_o according_o sai_z he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hebrew_n or_o jew_n of_o his_o time_n which_o be_v of_o the_o pharisee_n sect_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 5._o glory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d glory_n be_v here_o set_v to_o signify_v the_o schechina_n or_o appear_v of_o god_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v by_o angel_n of_o which_o there_o cherubim_v be_v the_o representation_n see_v note_n on_o mat._n 16._o n._n and_o on_o mar._n 1._o 2._o 〈◊〉_d ib._n mercy-seat_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v answerable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v two_o thing_n first_o to_o cover_v and_o
they_o and_o preserve_v his_o persecute_a disciple_n annotation_n on_o chap._n v._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 1._o in_o the_o right_a hand_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v not_o upon_o but_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n may_v appear_v by_o v_o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v take_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o his_o hand_n which_o suppose_v it_o former_o to_o be_v in_o it_o and_o though_o this_o be_v not_o the_o ordinary_a notation_n of_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o i_o see_v it_o be_v conceive_v by_o some_o that_o the_o book_n be_v here_o bring_v and_o lay_v by_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o his_o right_a hand_n yet_o the_o promiscuous_a use_n of_o preposition_n in_o these_o book_n answerable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n who_o preposition_n be_v use_v more_o loose_o and_o large_o will_v give_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o this_o now_o this_o be_v no_o nice_a consideration_n but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o use_n to_o explain_v that_o which_o follow_v of_o the_o lamb_n take_v the_o book_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d for_o this_o book_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o decree_n of_o vengeance_n and_o judgement_n upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n the_o crucifier_n of_o christ_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o professor_n and_o this_o power_n be_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n seat_v and_o instate_v on_o christ_n as_o a_o reward_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o consequent_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o decree_n of_o god_n put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o son_n who_o come_n and_o kingdom_n it_o be_v thence_o so_o often_o call_v and_o this_o power_n be_v not_o again_o deliver_v up_o into_o the_o father_n hand_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n all_o this_o be_v here_o fit_o and_o full_o express_v by_o the_o lamb_n take_v the_o book_n out_o of_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o will_v not_o so_o commodious_o be_v represent_v if_o the_o book_n have_v lie_v by_o he_o and_o have_v not_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o by_o his_o lose_v the_o seal_n and_o open_v the_o book_n that_o be_v bring_v forth_o those_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o lie_v fold_v up_o in_o his_o decree_n but_o be_v now_o to_o be_v remarkable_o execute_v by_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d ib._n write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o backside_n it_o may_v here_o be_v think_v probable_a of_o this_o book_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o by_o put_v a_o comma_n after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d within_o it_o shall_v thus_o be_v render_v write_v within_o and_o seal_v upon_o the_o back_n and_o so_o that_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v all_o on_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o book_n but_o beside_o that_o the_o ordinary_a punctation_n put_v the_o comma_n after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o back_n resist_v this_o there_o be_v many_o other_o circumstance_n clear_v the_o other_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n that_o the_o book_n or_o roll_n be_v write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o backside_n by_o within_o mean_v the_o inner_a concave_a superficies_n of_o the_o roll_n and_o by_o the_o backside_n the_o convex_a which_o be_v outermost_a in_o roll_v up_o see_v ch_z 4._o note_n i._o as_o first_o that_o in_o the_o process_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o open_n of_o every_o single_a seal_n bring_v forth_o some_o representation_n which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o all_o the_o seal_n be_v on_o the_o backside_n for_o than_o they_o must_v all_o be_v open_v before_o any_o part_n of_o the_o book_n can_v be_v discover_v and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v that_o the_o main_a book_n or_o roll_n have_v seven_o roll_n in_o it_o and_o each_o of_o they_o seal_v second_o the_o phrase_n in_o this_o place_n refer_v to_o the_o like_a in_o ezekiel_n c._n 2._o 10._o where_o a_o long_a succession_n of_o calamity_n be_v represent_v by_o a_o roll_n write_v within_o and_o without_o that_o be_v a_o roll_n write_v within_o throughout_o and_o on_o the_o backside_n a_o great_a way_n down_o yet_o leave_v enough_o in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o backside_n to_o wrap_v up_o all_o that_o be_v write_v and_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v see_v and_o so_o for_o seal_v also_o and_o that_o be_v perfect_o appliable_a to_o the_o phrase_n here_o write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o backside_n but_o so_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v void_a space_n leave_v to_o cover_v all_o &_o to_o seal_v up_o all_o three_o because_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o backside_n here_o be_v all_o one_o with_o without_o in_o ezekiel_n and_o so_o fit_o denote_v not_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o roll_n when_o it_o be_v make_v up_o or_o that_o part_n of_o the_o outside_n which_o appear_v then_o but_o the_o backside_n of_o the_o roll_n write_v on_o a_o good_a way_n when_o the_o inside_n or_o foreside_n be_v all_o write_v on_o this_o be_v fit_o appliable_a to_o the_o matter_n here_o foretell_v at_o the_o open_n of_o these_o seal_n a_o long_a series_n of_o calamity_n which_o shall_v fall_v upon_o this_o people_n just_a as_o in_o ezekiel_n it_o be_v for_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o a_o roll_n at_o any_o time_n be_v write_v on_o the_o backside_n viz._n because_o the_o inside_n which_o alone_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v write_v on_o will_v not_o contain_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o it_o scriptus_fw-la &_o à_fw-la tergo_fw-la be_v the_o expression_n for_o a_o very_a long_a roll_n or_o book_n that_o it_o be_v write_v on_o the_o backside_n also_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 8._o prayer_n of_o saint_n who_o the_o saint_n be_v who_o prayer_n be_v here_o mention_v as_o odour_n may_v appear_v v_o 10._o where_o of_o they_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v reign_v on_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o judgement_n of_o god_n on_o the_o enemy_n of_o christianity_n note_v by_o the_o lamb_n open_v the_o book_n note_v a_o shall_v be_v this_o that_o the_o christian_n shall_v thereby_o have_v a_o peaceable_a be_v upon_o earth_n to_o assemble_v and_o serve_v christ_n see_v c._n 1._o note_n d._n by_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o saint_n here_o be_v the_o christian_a people_n upon_o earth_n 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o the_o saint_n which_o reign_n in_o heaven_n and_o this_o also_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o notion_n of_o odour_n 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o their_o prayer_n be_v express_v for_o those_o refer_v to_o the_o incense_n that_o the_o priest_n be_v wont_a to_o offer_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n while_o the_o people_n pray_v without_o luk._n 1._o 10._o and_o their_o prayer_n suppose_v to_o go_v up_o with_o that_o incense_n to_o heaven_n by_o this_o it_o also_o appear_v that_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n and_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v here_o the_o vial_n in_o their_o hand_n 〈◊〉_d as_o also_o the_o harp_n the_o one_o to_o denote_v the_o prayer_n the_o other_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n of_o judaea_n as_o in_o the_o lay_n of_o the_o scene_n appear_v c._n 4._o note_n d._n and_o g._n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o present_v the_o prayer_n and_o praise_n of_o the_o christian_n to_o god_n and_o so_o by_o all_o these_o together_o the_o christian_a persecute_v church_n of_o judaea_n and_o by_o consent_n with_o they_o all_o other_o christian_n over_o the_o world_n be_v represent_v here_o as_o those_o that_o have_v now_o their_o prayer_n hear_v and_o those_o by_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o persecuter_n turn_v into_o praise_n chap._n vi_o 1._o and_o i_o see_v when_o the_o lamb_n open_v 1._o one_o of_o the_o seal_n and_o i_o hear_v 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v the_o noise_n of_o thunder_n one_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n say_v come_v and_o see_v paraphrase_n 1._o and_o as_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v christ_n open_v the_o first_o seal_n which_o close_v the_o first_o roll_n i_o look_v and_o the_o first_o of_o those_o four_o live_a creature_n call_v aloud_o to_o i_o or_o in_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o voice_n as_o be_v wont_a to_o come_v out_o of_o thunder_n when_o a_o voice_n be_v hear_v from_o heaven_n see_v note_n on_o act._n 9_o 6._o say_v come_v and_o see_v or_o here_o be_v a_o more_o full_a relation_n and_o prediction_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v foretell_v concern_v the_o jew_n mat._n 24._o set_v down_o here_o in_o this_o chapter_n in_o gross_a and_o more_o particular_o as_o they_o have_v their_o execution_n in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n 2._o and_o i_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o he_o have_v a_o bow_n and_o a_o crown_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o go_v forth_o
be_v slay_v in_o their_o passage_n through_o the_o country_n 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o again_o v._n 19_o their_o power_n be_v in_o their_o mouth_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o their_o tail_n for_o though_o it_o be_v possible_a again_o 〈◊〉_d that_o by_o the_o mouth_n and_o the_o tail_n may_v be_v mean_v the_o horseman_n and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o expedition_n sake_n a_o footman_n take_v up_o behind_o every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o which_o will_v also_o be_v appliable_a that_o which_o follow_v that_o their_o tail_n have_v head_n and_o with_o they_o they_o do_v hurt_v that_o be_v these_o footman_n set_v down_o from_o the_o horse_n be_v able_a to_o fight_v also_o and_o indeed_o be_v the_o most_o mischievous_a yet_o it_o be_v very_o reasonable_a to_o expound_v that_o also_o more_o gross_o that_o this_o army_n can_v better_o be_v express_v then_o by_o a_o poisonous_a kill_a serpent_n 〈◊〉_d that_o particular_o call_v amphisbaen●_fw-la which_o have_v a_o head_n at_o each_o end_n and_o so_o can_v equal_o wound_v by_o either_o which_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o whole_a army_n and_o not_o to_o each_o horseman_n in_o it_o will_v denote_v the_o two_o part_n of_o the_o army_n a_o front_n and_o a_o rear_n the_o former_a before_o describe_v v_o 17._o 18._o very_a terrible_a in_o their_o march_n and_o make_v great_a slaughter_n and_o then_o both_o of_o they_o together_o v_o 19_o that_o their_o tail_n be_v as_o formidable_a as_o their_o head_n their_o rear_n as_o their_o front_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o both_o together_o they_o be_v like_o that_o serpent_n which_o have_v another_o head_n in_o the_o tail_n and_o can_v do_v as_o much_o hurt_v with_o that_o as_o with_o the_o other_o what_o be_v the_o particular_a notation_n of_o each_o of_o these_o phrase_n may_v be_v some_o what_o uncertain_a whether_o either_o of_o these_o or_o whether_o yet_o some_o other_o rather_o but_o for_o the_o main_a or_o all_o together_o there_o be_v little_a doubt_n but_o they_o make_v up_o a_o description_n of_o the_o terribleness_n of_o that_o army_n in_o their_o march_n towards_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o great_a slaughter_n on_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o way_n thither_o and_o that_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o understanding_n the_o vision_n chap._n x._o paraphras_n 1._o and_o i_o see_v another_o mighty_a angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n clothe_v with_o a_o cloud_n and_o a_o rainbow_n be_v upon_o his_o head_n and_o his_o face_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sun_n and_o his_o foot_n as_o pillar_n of_o fire_n paraphrase_n 1._o upon_o the_o multiply_a of_o these_o sin_n c._n 9_o 21._o and_o impenitent_a continue_v in_o all_o their_o provocation_n it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o proceed_v as_o now_o he_o appear_v to_o i_o in_o the_o vision_n to_o do_v for_o i_o think_v i_o see_v another_o angel_n of_o special_a dignity_n such_o as_o ch_n 5._o 2._o and_o ch_n 18._o 21._o design_v and_o use_v for_o eminent_a employment_n come_v down_o in_o a_o cloud_n from_o heaven_n as_o angel_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v on_o god_n message_n have_v a_o rainbow_n on_o his_o head_n either_o to_o denote_v a_o glorious_a appearance_n as_o ezech._n 1._o 28._o or_o perhaps_o moreover_o see_v c._n 4._o 3._o god_n covenant_n of_o mercy_n and_o deliverance_n make_v with_o all_o his_o faithful_a servant_n who_o be_v now_o to_o receive_v benefit_n by_o what_o shall_v fall_v out_o see_v c._n 9_o 13._o but_o his_o look_n or_o countenance_n be_v most_o terrible_a and_o his_o foot_n denote_v his_o way_n and_o present_v design_v action_n be_v most_o sad_a and_o destructive_a the_o fire_n note_v destruction_n and_o the_o pillar_n the_o fixtnesse_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o immutablenesse_n of_o it_o 2._o and_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o little_a book_n open_a and_o he_o set_v his_o right_a foot_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o his_o left_a foot_n upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d earth_n paraphrase_n 2._o and_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o roll_n open_v and_o so_o ready_a to_o be_v read_v wherein_o be_v contain_v a_o sentence_n against_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n see_v note_n on_o ch_z 7._o 6._o a_o decree_n come_v out_o from_o god_n of_o utter_a destruction_n and_o this_o be_v the_o completion_n of_o that_o prophecy_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n shall_v make_v his_o enemy_n his_o footstool_n that_o be_v subdue_v and_o bring_v they_o down_o and_o that_o here_o express_v by_o this_o angel_n set_v both_o his_o foot_n on_o they_o 3._o and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o when_o a_o lion_n roar_v and_o when_o he_o have_v cry_v note_v a_o seven_o thunder_n utter_v their_o voice_n paraphrase_n 3._o and_o this_o angel_n roar_v terrible_o as_o a_o lion_n do_v roar_v after_o his_o prey_n when_o he_o be_v in_o fight_n of_o it_o and_o upon_o that_o as_o upon_o a_o call_n the_o seven_o thunder_n utter_v their_o voice_n that_o be_v i_o think_v i_o hear_v seven_o that_o be_v many_o clap_n of_o thunder_n and_o voice_n come_v out_o of_o they_o by_o which_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o titus_n be_v short_o represent_v 4._o and_o when_o the_o seven_o thunder_n have_v utter_v their_o voice_n i_o be_v about_o to_o write_v and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o i_o seal_v up_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o seven_o thunder_n utter_v and_o write_v they_o not_o paraphrase_n 4._o and_o as_o i_o have_v before_o write_v what_o i_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v so_o now_o i_o be_v about_o to_o do_v to_o set_v down_o what_o be_v say_v by_o those_o voice_n but_o i_o be_v command_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o i_o shall_v shut_v and_o seal_v they_o up_o signify_v they_o to_o be_v too_o terrible_a to_o be_v reveal_v the_o ear_n of_o every_o one_o that_o hear_v they_o will_v tingle_v and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o be_v seal_v and_o close_v up_o in_o silence_n then_o to_o be_v record_v or_o set_v down_o such_o be_v this_o destruction_n by_o titus_n 5._o and_o the_o angel_n which_o i_o see_v stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d earth_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 5._o and_o the_o angel_n ver_fw-la 1._o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n as_o a_o ceremony_n of_o swear_v gen._n 14._o 22._o deut._n 32._o 40._o proportionable_o to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o god_n concern_v the_o provoke_a israelite_n that_o he_o swear_v in_o his_o wrath_n they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o not_o enter_v into_o canaan_n or_o concern_v the_o deliver_v his_o people_n out_o of_o antiochus_n hand_n dan._n 12._o 7._o 6._o and_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o who_o create_a heaven_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o therein_o be_v and_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o therein_o be_v and_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v therein_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v delay_n note_n b_o time_n no_o long_o 7_o but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n when_o he_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d begin_v to_o sound_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v finish_v as_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n paraphrase_n 6_o 7._o and_o with_o a_o oath_n by_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o the_o world_n he_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n that_o time_n of_o delay_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v that_o be_v that_o this_o execution_n of_o god_n decree_n shall_v be_v no_o long_o defer_v but_o the_o destruction_n so_o long_o threaten_v which_o when_o it_o come_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o total_a utter_a destruction_n shall_v now_o immediate_o light_a upon_o this_o people_n a_o very_a great_a part_n of_o it_o now_o by_o titus_n and_o within_o a_o very_a little_a while_n upon_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n it_o shall_v be_v perfect_v and_o so_o all_o those_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v whereby_o it_o have_v be_v foretell_v both_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n and_o since_o by_o the_o prophet_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o who_o it_o have_v be_v make_v know_v by_o god_n though_o when_o or_o at_o what_o point_n of_o time_n it_o have_v never_o be_v reveal_v to_o any_o mat._n 24._o 36._o act._n 1._o 7._o and_o so_o be_v keep_v as_o a_o mystery_n 8._o and_o the_o voice_n which_o i_o hear_v from_o heaven_n speak_v unto_o i_o again_o and_o say_v go_v and_o take_v the_o little_a book_n which_o be_v open_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o 〈◊〉_d stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d earth_n paraphrase_n 8._o and_o that_o voice_n that_o speak_v to_o i_o from_o heaven_n v_o 4._o again_o speak_v to_o i_o and_o command_v i_o
the_o heretical_a gnostick_n corruption_n of_o uncleanness_n etc._n etc._n see_v note_n on_o ch_z 2._o n._n and_o that_o hold_v out_o constant_a against_o all_o terror_n of_o persecution_n and_o so_o be_v rescue_v from_o the_o sin_n of_o that_o wicked_a age_n the_o pure_a primitive_a christian_n 5._o and_o in_o their_o mouth_n be_v find_v no_o guile_n for_o they_o be_v without_o fault_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 5._o that_o never_o fall_v off_o to_o any_o false_a idolatrous_a or_o heretical_a practice_n but_o serve_v god_n blameless_a 6._o and_o i_o see_v another_o angel_n fly_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n have_v the_o note_n b_o everlasting_a 〈◊〉_d gospel_n to_o preach_v unto_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o every_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n paraphrase_n 6._o and_o methinks_v i_o see_v another_o angel_n none_o of_o those_o before_o mention_v fly_v or_o hasten_v about_o the_o world_n carry_v good_a news_n with_o he_o happy_a tiding_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o all_o nation_n jew_n and_o gentile_n viz._n to_o the_o christian_n of_o all_o 7._o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n fear_v god_n and_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o for_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v and_o worship_v he_o that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n paraphrase_n 7._o and_o thereupon_o admonish_v all_o now_o to_o stand_v out_o firm_o and_o constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o heathen_a idolatry_n which_o shall_v now_o short_o be_v destroy_v 8._o and_o there_o follow_v another_o angel_n say_v note_n c_o great_a babylon_n be_v fall_v be_v fall_v that_o great_a city_n because_o she_o make_v all_o nation_n drink_v of_o the_o it_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o her_o fornication_n paraphrase_n 8._o and_o as_o ver_fw-la 7._o it_o be_v foretell_v that_o idolatry_n shall_v suddeny_v be_v destroy_v so_o present_o another_o angel_n methinks_v bring_v news_n that_o it_o be_v do_v that_o that_o whole_a impure_a city_n of_o rome_n heathen_a under_o the_o 9_o and_o the_o three_o angel_n follow_v they_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n if_o any_o man_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n paraphrase_n 9_o and_o methinks_v a_o three_o angel_n follow_v on_o purpose_n to_o confirm_v all_o weak_a seducible_a persecute_a christian_n and_o to_o fortify_v they_o in_o their_o patience_n and_o constancy_n under_o the_o present_a or_o yet_o remain_v persecution_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o this_o he_o do_v by_o denounce_v the_o judgement_n that_o the_o inconstant_a shall_v fall_v under_o the_o direful_a ruin_n which_o attend_v all_o apostatise_v comply_v christian_n that_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o gnostick_n complier_n for_o fear_v of_o persecution_n have_v or_o shall_v forsake_v the_o christian_a purity_n and_o join_v in_o the_o worship_n or_o practice_n of_o heathen_a rome_n denounce_v positive_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v so_o see_v note_n on_o chap._n 13._o m._n n._n 10._o the_o same_o shall_v drink_v of_o note_n d_o the_o wrath_n wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o be_v pour_v out_o without_o mixture_n into_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o indignation_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v torment_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lamb._n paraphrase_n 10._o he_o shall_v have_v his_o portion_n with_o heathen_a rome_n in_o the_o bitter_a punishment_n or_o effect_n of_o god_n wrath_n such_o as_o fall_v upon_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n christ_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o the_o angel_n the_o executioner_n of_o it_o 11._o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o their_o torment_n ascend_v up_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o they_o have_v no_o rest_n day_n not_o night_n who_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o whosoever_o receive_v the_o n._n mark_n of_o this_o name_n paraphrase_n 11._o even_o utter_a destruction_n to_o all_o that_o shall_v have_v be_v guilty_a of_o this_o in_o any_o degree_n see_v ch_z 13._o note_n n._n and_o do_v not_o timely_o repent_v of_o it_o 12._o here_o be_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n here_o be_v they_o that_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n paraphrase_n 12._o and_o herein_o shall_v the_o sincerity_n of_o man_n heart_n appear_v and_o be_v make_v manifest_a by_o the_o bloody_a persecution_n now_o approach_v ver_fw-la 13._o if_o they_o shall_v venture_v any_o persecution_n from_o the_o heathen_n rather_o than_o thus_o fall_v off_o and_o deny_v christ_n if_o whatever_o the_o hazard_n be_v they_o shall_v adhere_v close_o to_o the_o precept_n of_o christian_a constancy_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o christian_a practice_n and_o neither_o real_o nor_o seem_o comply_v with_o the_o persecuter_n 13._o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o i_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n note_n e_o from_o henceforth_o yea_o faith_n the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v 〈◊〉_d they_o paraphrase_n 13._o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n there_o come_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v that_o there_o shall_v now_o come_v a_o great_a trial_n indeed_o viz._n in_o the_o time_n of_o diocletian_a that_o cruel_a tyrant_n and_o the_o persecution_n shall_v lie_v so_o heavy_a on_o the_o christian_n within_o a_o while_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v happy_a that_o be_v well_o dead_a who_o be_v come_v to_o enjoy_v their_o reward_n of_o peace_n and_o bliss_n and_o be_v not_o leave_v on_o earth_n for_o such_o combat_n and_o storm_n as_o these_o 14._o and_o i_o look_v &_o behold_v a_o white_a cloud_n and_o upon_o the_o cloud_n one_o sit_v like_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v on_o his_o head_n note_n f_o a_o golden_a crown_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o sharp_a sickle_n 15._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o thy_o sickle_n and_o reap_v for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v for_o thou_o to_o reap_v for_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n 〈◊〉_d be_v ripe_a paraphrase_n 14_o 15._o and_o present_o upon_o this_o vision_n of_o those_o sharp_a persecution_n which_o general_o be_v mean_n to_o call_v down_o god_n judgement_n on_o the_o persecuter_n methinks_v i_o see_v a_o bright_a shine_a cloud_n and_o one_o like_v christ_n upon_o it_o in_o a_o regal_a attire_n with_o a_o sickle_n in_o his_o hand_n all_o this_o note_v the_o judgement_n and_o excision_n of_o heathen_a rome_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o cruelty_n against_o the_o christian_n and_o their_o other_o heathen_a sin_n be_v now_o as_o a_o field_n of_o corn_n ready_a for_o harvest_n and_o another_o angel_n call_v to_o he_o and_o bid_v he_o proceed_v immediate_o to_o this_o excision_n their_o sin_n be_v come_v to_o maturity_n and_o have_v fit_v they_o for_o destruction_n 16._o and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v reap_v paraphrase_n 16._o and_o he_o do_v according_o and_o this_o vengeance_n befall_v heathen_a rome_n 17._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o also_o have_v a_o sharp_a sickle_n paraphrase_n 17._o and_o another_o angel_n or_o officer_n of_o christ_n vengeance_n be_v send_v out_o by_o he_o on_o the_o same_o errand_n and_o methinks_v he_o come_v from_o god_n in_o heaven_n as_o out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n the_o place_n where_o incense_n be_v offer_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n again_o with_o a_o sharp_a sickle_n in_o his_o hand_n a_o emblem_n of_o excision_n 18._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o from_o the_o altar_n which_o have_v note_n g_o power_n over_o fire_n and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a cry_n to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sickle_n say_v thrust_v in_o thy_o sharp_a sickle_n and_o gather_v the_o cluster_n of_o the_o vine_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o her_o grape_n be_v full_o ripe_a paraphrase_n 18._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v from_o the_o altar_n of_o burnt-offering_n by_o which_o the_o wicked_a be_v represent_v have_v the_o execution_n of_o god_n wrath_n upon_o the_o wicked_a entrust_v to_o he_o and_o he_o cry_v aloud_o to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sickle_n and_o bid_v he_o set_v about_o this_o work_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o time_n of_o vintage_n cut_v down_o the_o cluster_n of_o grape_n of_o the_o vine_n of_o the_o land_n that_o be_v destroy_v this_o idolatrous_a cruel_a city_n and_o people_n as_o have_v fill_v up_o the_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o by_o his_o dwell_n in_o nazareth_n he_o come_v to_o be_v style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o nazaren_n i._n e._n that_o true_a branch_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n isa_n 11._o 1._o jer._n 23._o 5._o &_o 33._o 14._o zach._n 6._o 12._o &_o 3._o 8._o isa_n 4._o 2._o have_v so_o often_o speak_v this_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d both_o because_o the_o jew_n call_v christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o because_o this_o only_a can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v foretell_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o prophet_n other_o indeed_o think_v it_o not_o improbable_a that_o it_o shall_v refer_v to_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v separavit_fw-la for_o thus_o also_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v indifferent_o use_v in_o the_o gospel_n will_v bear_v and_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o when_o gen._n 49._o 26._o &_o deut._n 33._o 16._o joseph_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o separate_v from_o his_o brethren_n the_o latin_a read_v nazoraeus_n fratrum_fw-la suorum_fw-la and_o it_o may_v be_v consider_v to_o this_o purpose_n how_o fit_o joseph_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v represent_v to_o we_o in_o this_o chapter_n as_o joseph_n be_v by_o his_o brethren_n sell_v into_o egypt_n so_o be_v christ_n by_o the_o persecution_n of_o herod_n drive_v thither_o as_o joseph_n be_v separate_v from_o his_o brethren_n and_o cast_v out_o from_o among_o they_o so_o be_v christ_n for_o fear_n of_o archelaus_n separate_v from_o his_o own_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o constrain_v to_o dwell_v in_o nazareth_n of_o galile_n who_o name_n may_v denote_v that_o flight_n or_o separation_n and_o last_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o zachary_n 7._o 3._o be_v use_v for_o a_o afflict_a humble_a person_n one_o separate_a from_o the_o comfort_n of_o life_n his_o daily_a bread_n so_o be_v this_o applyable_a to_o christ_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o nazareth_n a_o vile_a place_n can_n any_o good_a thing_n come_v out_o of_o nazareth_n and_o so_o a_o special_a part_n of_o christ_n humiliation_n to_o live_v there_o this_o other_o account_n of_o the_o word_n i_o can_v further_o commend_v to_o the_o reader_n yet_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o mention_v it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o former_a of_o the_o branch_n be_v most_o commodious_a and_o satisfactory_a all_o the_o difficulty_n be_v how_o this_o dwell_n in_o nazareth_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v design_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o prophecy_n which_o refer_v not_o at_o all_o to_o his_o dwell_n there_o in_o answer_n to_o which_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v remember_v what_o be_v say_v on_o c._n 1._o note_v k._n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o note_n no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o by_o this_o passage_n of_o story_n those_o passage_n of_o the_o prophet_n receive_v a_o completion_n and_o second_o that_o prophecy_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o be_v complete_v or_o fulfil_v when_o strict_o and_o proper_o or_o in_o the_o primitive_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n they_o be_v not_o fulfil_v but_o only_o in_o a_o large_a acception_n of_o they_o so_o as_o by_o way_n of_o accommodation_n they_o may_v be_v applyable_a to_o what_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v or_o that_o the_o thing_n do_v may_v reflect_v or_o refer_v to_o such_o word_n in_o the_o prophet_n or_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n thus_o do_v the_o author_n to_o the_o hebrew_n from_o the_o interpretation_n of_o salem_n of_o which_o melchisedek_n the_o type_n of_o christ_n be_v king_n conclude_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n be_v 9_o and_o then_o why_o may_v not_o the_o evangelist_n here_o from_o his_o dwell_n in_o nazareth_n and_o so_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o title_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d conclude_v as_o proper_o that_o the_o appellation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o isaiah_n foretell_v of_o he_o do_v now_o appear_v to_o belong_v to_o he_o though_o not_o in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o be_v first_o affirm_v of_o he_o yet_o by_o way_n of_o accommodation_n which_o it_o will_v do_v more_o discernible_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o as_o cinnereth_n in_o joshua_n retain_v by_o the_o jerusalem_n targum_fw-la num._n 34._o 15._o be_v after_o change_v into_o gennesareth_n the_o valley_n of_o branch_n and_o therefore_o christ_n abode_n and_o conversation_n be_v so_o much_o about_o that_o lake_n by_o which_o he_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v true_o that_o branch_n so_o oft_o prophesy_v of_o so_o in_o all_o probability_n that_o city_n in_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephthali_n which_o be_v call_v en_fw-fr hazor_n jos_n 19_o 37._o be_v after_o contract_v and_o light_o change_v into_o nazer_n and_o nazareth_n to_o signify_v the_o city_n of_o the_o branch_n or_o where_o the_o messiah_n the_o branch_n shall_v be_v bring_v up_o and_o according_o this_o become_v christ_n vulgar_a title_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mat._n 26._o 71._o mar._n 10._o 47._o lu._n 18._o 37._o 24._o 19_o john_n 18._o 5_o 7._o and_o 19_o 19_o and_o seven_o time_n in_o the_o act_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o same_o notion_n sometime_o mar._n 1._o 24._o 14._o 67._o 16._o 6._o and_o luk._n 4._o 34._o chap._n iii_o 1._o in_o those_o day_n come_v john_n the_o note_n a_o baptist_n preach_v in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o judea_n paraphrase_n 1._o now_o before_o christ_n enter_v upon_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o office_n that_o of_o preach_v the_o will_n of_o god_n call_v his_o prophetic_a office_n in_o which_o he_o continue_v till_o his_o crucifixion_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o set_v down_o the_o office_n of_o john_n baptist_n who_o proclaim_v his_o come_n beforehand_o as_o his_o harbinger_n or_o forerunner_n and_o at_o who_o baptise_v of_o christ_n the_o holy_a ghost_n visible_o descend_v on_o he_o and_o consecrate_v he_o to_o this_o prophetic_a office_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v while_o jesus_n continue_v at_o nazareth_n though_o many_o year_n after_o his_o first_o come_v thither_o john_n the_o baptist_n preach_v in_o the_o desert_n call_v the_o desert_n of_o judea_n differ_v from_o other_o desert_n mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n under_o the_o name_n of_o maon_n engaddi_n ziph_n the_o desert_n of_o idumea_n etc._n etc._n by_o a_o river_n side_n near_o enon_n and_o salim_n 2._o and_o say_v note_n b_o repent_v you_o for_o the_o note_n c_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n paraphrase_n 2._o nor_o give_v they_o any_o new_a precept_n of_o life_n but_o charge_v they_o with_o their_o breach_n against_o the_o rule_n or_o law_n which_o they_o have_v already_o and_o according_o say_v to_o all_o that_o people_n reform_v &_o mend_v your_o life_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n so_o long_o look_v for_o be_v now_o approach_v and_o so_o the_o time_n that_o god_n shall_v come_v to_o execute_v most_o visible_a judgement_n on_o this_o land_n even_o to_o a_o utter_a destruction_n if_o you_o repent_v not_o at_o this_o preach_n of_o john_n and_o christ_n and_o withal_o bestow_v most_o eminent_a and_o remarkable_a preservation_n upon_o all_o penitent_a believer_n 3._o for_o this_o be_v he_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n esaias_n say_v the_o voice_n of_o one_o cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n prepare_v you_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o path_n straight_o paraphrase_n 3._o and_o this_o according_a to_o that_o which_o isaiah_n c._n 40._o say_v he_o shall_v preach_v in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o judea_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o his_o preach_n shall_v be_v the_o approach_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v to_o receive_v his_o kingdom_n and_o upon_o his_o be_v reject_v come_v with_o his_o host_n against_o the_o obdurate_a and_o rebellious_a to_o destroy_v they_o that_o will_v not_o let_v he_o reign_v over_o they_o see_v note_n c._n 4._o and_o the_o same_o john_n have_v his_o note_n d_o raiment_n of_o camel_n hair_n and_o a_o leathern_a girdle_n about_o his_o loin_n and_o his_o meat_n be_v locust_n and_o field-honey_n note_n e_o wild_a honey_n paraphrase_n 4._o wear_v a_o rough_a garment_n make_v of_o camel_n hair_n such_o as_o elias_n have_v 2_o king_n 1._o 8._o and_o be_v thence_o call_v a_o hairy-man_n or_o of_o sackcloth_n rev._n 11._o 3._o agreeable_a to_o his_o be_v in_o
be_v most_o visible_a in_o judge_v betwixt_o the_o wheat_n and_o straw_n burn_v up_o the_o refuse_n destroy_v the_o impenitent_a unbelieve_a jew_n but_o protect_v and_o set_v safe_a on_o the_o shore_n all_o the_o disciple_n &_o beleiver_n and_o that_o by_o the_o very_a destruction_n of_o these_o their_o brethren_n who_o be_v their_o chief_a persecutor_n v_o 16._o this_o sense_n will_v be_v the_o more_o unquestioned_a if_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o when_o christ_n himself_o begin_v to_o preach_v he_o use_v these_o same_o word_n c._n 4._o 17._o by_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o christ_n preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o only_a thing_n mean_v by_o this_o kingdom_n as_o it_o be_v general_o suppose_v because_o that_o be_v then_o actual_o present_a when_o christ_n say_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v nigh_o approach_v and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o preter_fw-la tense_n express_v by_o the_o latin_a appropinquivit_fw-la may_v signify_v that_o it_o have_v be_v near_o but_o now_o be_v present_a then_o first_o i_o answer_v that_o that_o grammatical_a nicety_n will_v not_o be_v appliable_a to_o many_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o that_o tense_n be_v use_v 2._o that_o even_o the_o full_a grammatical_a importance_n of_o it_o will_v be_v make_v up_o by_o render_v it_o it_n have_v for_o some_o time_n be_v approach_v that_o people_n sin_n long_o call_v for_o it_o 3._o luke_n 21._o 31._o which_o be_v long_o after_o this_o and_o withal_o a_o prediction_n of_o a_o time_n then_o future_a it_o be_v then_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v nigh_o and_o as_o by_o christ_n so_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v out_o by_o he_o the_o same_o stile_n be_v still_o prescribe_v they_o mat._n 10._o 7._o as_o you_o go_v preach_v say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o this_o same_o sense_n affirm_v by_o christ_n that_o he_o come_v to_o send_v a_o sword_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n a_o slaughter_n on_o the_o land_n of_o judea_n mat._n 10._o 34._o so_o when_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v down_o by_o st._n luke_n 10._o 11._o to_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o not_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o use_v a_o direful_a ceremony_n shake_v off_o the_o dust_n from_o their_o foot_n against_o they_o and_o tell_v they_o the_o importance_n of_o it_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v nigh_o upon_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v_o 11._o and_o upon_o the_o back_n of_o that_o v_o 12._o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o sodom_n in_o that_o day_n i._n e_o not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o come_v for_o that_o belong_v to_o each_o particular_a person_n not_o whole_a city_n together_o but_o in_o that_o day_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n then_o for_o that_o refractory_a city_n god_n deal_v with_o sodom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o destruction_n with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n shall_v be_v acknowlege_v to_o have_v be_v more_o supportable_a than_o his_o deal_n with_o such_o contumacious_a impenitent_a city_n of_o judea_n so_o mat._n 16._o 28._o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o kingdom_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o transfiguration_n as_o it_o be_v by_o many_o mistake_v but_o to_o a_o come_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n to_o reward_v and_o punish_v v_o 27_o and_o be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n come_v with_o power_n mark_v 9_o 1._o and_o that_o belong_v clear_o to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n viz._n to_o arm_v his_o follower_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v terrify_v with_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n v_o 25._o or_o tempt_v to_o deny_v christ_n luke_n 9_o 29._o so_o luke_n 19_o 11._o when_o it_o be_v say_v they_o think_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v present_o appear_v christ_n parable_n conclude_v with_o the_o bring_v forth_o and_o slay_v the_o enemy_n before_o he_o applies_z it_o direct_o to_o this_o purpose_n v_o 27._o and_o so_o what_o he_o add_v v_o 43._o at_o his_o entrance_n into_o jerusalem_n so_o luke_n 17._o 20._o when_o he_o answer_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n come_v not_o with_o observation_n i._n e._n in_o a_o pompous_a remarkable_a manner_n so_o as_o king_n be_v wont_a to_o come_v with_o their_o court_n and_o train_n attend_v which_o all_o man_n come_v out_o to_o look_v after_o and_o cry_v lo_o here_o i._n e._n it_o be_v come_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o consequent_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o this_o matter_n 1._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n among_o they_o than_o already_o begin_v v_o 21._o and_o then_o the_o destroy_n of_o unbeleiver_n v_o 22._o 24._o etc._n etc._n the_o way_n by_o which_o this_o phrase_n come_v thus_o to_o signify_v be_v this_o because_o there_o be_v several_a office_n of_o a_o king_n the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n as_o well_o as_o of_o make_v law_n of_o punish_v and_o reward_v as_o well_o as_o of_o reign_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rom._n 13._o 4._o a_o avenger_n to_o inflict_v punishment_n and_o so_o he_o be_v express_v at_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luke_n 18._o 7._o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v call_v judge_n inflict_v of_o punishment_n or_o judgement_n which_o be_v one_o part_n give_v denomination_n to_o the_o whole_a regal_a office_n and_o so_o luke_n 10._o these_o three_o phrase_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n v._n 11._o and_o that_o day_n i._n e._n the_o time_n of_o his_o exercise_v that_o regal_a power_n v_o 12._o or_o as_o saint_n mark_n read_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mar._n 6._o 11._o the_o day_n of_o execute_v judgement_n and_o in_o the_o same_o matter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ver_fw-la 14._o judgement_n simple_o be_v all_o phrase_n of_o the_o same_o significancy_n to_o note_v the_o destruction_n here_o threaten_v with_o which_o there_o be_v also_o mercy_n mingle_v and_o preservation_n to_o some_o see_v luke_n 17_o 34._o and_o 21._o 28._o the_o same_o thing_n be_v express_v by_o other_o phrase_n the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o end_n the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o age_n etc._n etc._n which_o in_o their_o due_a place_n shall_v be_v observe_v 〈◊〉_d v._o 4._o of_o camel_n hair_n this_o garment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o camel_n hair_n use_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n seem_v to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o garment_n of_o haircloth_n make_v of_o hair_n rude_a and_o raw_a not_o of_o hair_n soften_v and_o dress_v or_o spin_v into_o a_o thread_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o be_v the_o same_o that_o betwixt_o flax_n rude_a or_o unprepared_a and_o the_o same_o dress_v or_o spin_v one_o have_v much_o more_o of_o coursness_n and_o asperity_n than_o the_o other_o or_o between_o that_o which_o we_o now_o call_v haircloth_n which_o be_v make_v of_o rude_a undress_v hair_n and_o chamlet_n or_o grogoram_n that_o be_v make_v of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v soften_v and_o spin_v and_o prepare_v that_o the_o former_a be_v that_o which_o be_v here_o mention_v may_v appear_v 1._o by_o the_o design_n of_o it_o use_v by_o john_n as_o here_o set_v down_o by_o the_o evangelist_n to_o signify_v the_o austerity_n of_o his_o habit_n as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v of_o his_o diet_n and_o so_o interpret_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_n which_o it_o will_v not_o be_v have_v it_o be_v thus_o dress_v and_o soften_v 2_o lie_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o as_o he_o be_v elias_n that_o be_v foretell_v shall_v come_v so_o his_o habit_n and_o his_o diet_n and_o the_o wilderness_n as_o well_o as_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o prophecy_n fire_n from_o heaven_n judgement_n on_o the_o impenitent_a be_v to_o represent_v elias_n now_o of_o elias_n we_o read_v his_o habit_n thus_o describe_v 2_o king_n 1._o 8._o he_o be_v a_o hairy_a man_n and_o gird_v with_o a_o girdle_n of_o leather_n about_o his_o loin_n where_o the_o hair_n be_v join_v with_o the_o leathern_a girdle_n or_o zone_n may_v most_o probable_o be_v interpret_v both_o of_o they_o to_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o his_o habit_n or_o manner_n of_o attire_n inquire_v of_o v_o 7._o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o complete_a description_n of_o that_o this_o haircloth_n and_o leathern_a zone_n be_v all_o the_o clothes_n that_o he_o have_v visible_a about_o he_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o baptist_n here_o and_o not_o of_o the_o form_n or_o manner_n or_o constitution_n of_o his_o body_n that_o he_o be_v like_o esau_n a_o man_n with_o much_o
death_n 〈◊〉_d light_n be_v spring_v up_o 17._o from_o that_o time_n jesus_n begin_v to_o preach_v and_o to_o say_v repent_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n paraphrase_n 17._o now_o begin_v jesus_n to_o enter_v on_o his_o prophetic_a office_n consist_v of_o three_o thing_n preach_v or_o make_v know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n entertain_v disciple_n do_v of_o miracle_n the_o first_o here_o and_o more_o large_o mat._n 5._o 6_o 7._o and_o in_o his_o many_o parable_n the_o second_o v_o 18._o etc._n etc._n the_o three_o as_o necessary_a to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n on_o all_o occasion_n from_o time_n to_o time_n till_o his_o death_n and_o departure_n hence_o and_o the_o sum_n of_o that_o office_n be_v to_o bring_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n by_o give_v they_o warning_n from_o god_n promise_v to_o allure_v and_o threaten_n to_o fright_v they_o to_o it_o 18._o and_o jesus_n walk_v by_o the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n see_v two_o brethren_n simon_n call_v peter_n and_o andrew_z his_o brother_n cast_v a_o net_n into_o the_o sea_n for_o they_o be_v fisher_n 19_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o follow_v i_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o fisher_n of_o man_n paraphrase_n 18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o and_o as_o jesus_n be_v walk_v by_o the_o lake_n of_o genesereth_n see_v note_n on_o luke_n 8._o c._n he_o see_v two_o brethren_n that_o be_v fisher_n simon_n who_o be_v afterward_o surname_v peter_n and_o andrew_z his_o brother_n a_o wash_a their_o net_n upon_o the_o shore_n luke_n 5._o 2._o and_o have_v spend_v some_o time_n in_o discourse_n with_o they_o or_o preach_v to_o they_o he_o go_v a_o little_a far_o and_o see_v two_o other_o brethren_n james_z and_o john_n with_o their_o father_n zebedee_n all_o of_o the_o same_o trade_n and_o they_o be_v in_o their_o boat_n mend_v their_o net_n have_v new_o wash_v they_o on_o the_o shore_n also_o luke_n 5._o 2._o and_o now_o return_v to_o their_o boat_n again_o and_o soon_o after_o this_o have_v do_v a_o great_a miracle_n set_v down_o distinct_o luke_o 5._o 3._o etc._n etc._n see_v note_n a._n on_o the_o chap._n he_o call_v all_o the_o four_o command_v they_o to_o follow_v he_o promise_v to_o make_v they_o fisher_n of_o man_n or_o to_o instate_v they_o in_o a_o call_n and_o endue_v they_o with_o power_n of_o gain_v and_o convert_v of_o man_n and_o they_o all_o forsake_v their_o boat_n and_o trade_n obey_v and_o follow_v he_o 20._o and_o they_o straightway_o leave_v their_o net_n and_o follow_v he_o 21._o and_o go_v on_o from_o thence_o he_o see_v other_o two_o brethren_n james_z the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n and_o john_n his_o brother_n in_o a_o ship_n with_o zebedee_n their_o father_n mend_v their_o net_n and_o he_o call_v they_o 22._o and_o they_o immediate_o leave_v the_o ship_n and_o their_o father_n and_o follow_v he_o 23._o and_o jesus_n go_v about_o all_o galilee_n teach_v in_o their_o synagogue_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o sickness_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o disease_n among_o the_o people_n 24._o and_o his_o fame_n go_v throughout_o all_o syria_n and_o they_o bring_v unto_o he_o all_o sick_a people_n that_o be_v take_v with_o divers_a disease_n and_o torment_n and_o those_o which_o be_v possess_v with_o devil_n and_o those_o which_o be_v lunatic_a and_o those_o that_o have_v the_o palsy_n and_o he_o heal_v they_o paraphrase_n 24._o affect_a with_o any_o disease_n on_o which_o the_o change_n of_o the_o moon_n have_v influence_n whether_o madness_n or_o fall_v sickness_n see_v note_n on_o c._n 17._o c._n 25._o and_o there_o follow_v he_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n from_o galilee_n and_o from_o decapolis_n and_o from_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o judea_n and_o from_o beyond_o jordan_n annotation_n on_o st._n matthew_n chap_n iu._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 1._o the_o devil_n the_o hebrew_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o adversary_n may_v be_v take_v either_o in_o the_o general_n or_o else_o as_o it_o contain_v under_o it_o two_o specifical_a notion_n one_o of_o a_o adversary_n in_o foro_fw-la a_o accuser_n and_o especial_o a_o false_a accuser_n the_o other_o of_o a_o treacherous_a person_n that_o consult_v and_o study_v to_o mischief_n other_o in_o the_o general_n it_o be_v often_o meet_v with_o and_o apply_v to_o the_o devil_n our_o enemy_n indefinite_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o specifical_a notion_n it_o be_v according_o render_v by_o the_o septuagint_n sometime_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d accuser_n sometime_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d betrayer_n and_o in_o 1_o mac._n 1._o 36._o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d accuser_n be_v use_v where_o the_o sense_n and_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o sore_a snare_n v_o 35._o enforce_v and_o require_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d treacherous_a person_n and_o yet_o our_o english_a render_v it_o in_o the_o general_n according_a to_o the_o more_o comprehensive_a nature_n of_o the_o hebrew_n to_o which_o it_o be_v answerable_a a_o adversary_n thus_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prevail_v and_o be_v common_o use_v to_o signify_v not_o in_o the_o special_a either_o a_o calumniator_n or_o insidiator_n though_o it_o sometime_o signify_v one_o of_o they_o perhaps_o the_o latter_a john_n 6._o 70._o one_o of_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mean_v to_o betray_v i_o and_o the_o former_a eph._n 4._o 27._o let_v not_o the_o sun_n go_v down_o upon_o your_o wrath_n neither_o give_v place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o calumniator_n who_o be_v then_o wont_a to_o interpose_v and_o widen_v the_o breach_n and_o so_o certain_o 1_v tim._n 3._o 11._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o calumniator_n and_o 2_o tim._n 3._o 3._o and_o tit._n 2._o 3._o nor_o yet_o the_o devil_n under_o that_o one_o peculiar_a notion_n as_o a_o liar_n or_o calumniator_n but_o so_o as_o the_o greek_a be_v of_o the_o same_o latitude_n with_o the_o general_a comprehensive_a hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d enemy_n 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d adversary_n or_o plaintiff_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d opposer_n in_o other_o place_n and_o so_o it_o may_v best_o be_v render_v satan_n retain_v the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o translation_n as_o the_o septuagint_n oft_o do_v i._n e._n that_o evil_a spirit_n which_o set_v himself_o as_o a_o adversary_n against_o all_o good_a man_n and_o endeavour_n to_o do_v all_o mischief_n that_o he_o can_v 〈◊〉_d v._o 5._o a_o pinnacle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v literal_o a_o little_a wing_n do_v here_o note_v the_o exterior_a circuit_n of_o the_o top_n of_o the_o house_n which_o compass_v it_o in_o and_o be_v thence_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deut._n 22._o 8._o to_o keep_v man_n from_o danger_n of_o fall_v from_o the_o roof_n and_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o law_n prescribe_v in_o their_o building_n that_o thou_o bring_v not_o blood_n upon_o thy_o house_n it_o be_v by_o the_o grammarian_n explain_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o define_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o kind_n of_o girdle_n on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o encompass_v it_o which_o be_v clear_o the_o battlement_n not_o the_o pinnacle_n see_v note_n on_o c._n 10._o i._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 7._o not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n that_o the_o phrase_n of_o tempt_a god_n signify_v not_o too_o much_o but_o too_o little_a confidence_n a_o diffidence_n and_o incredulity_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o several_a place_n wherein_o the_o phrase_n be_v use_v thus_o the_o israelite_n tempt_v of_o god_n in_o exodus_fw-la and_o deuteronomy_n be_v general_o doubt_v of_o god_n care_n and_o providence_n and_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o which_o they_o have_v have_v so_o many_o argument_n and_o assurance_n and_o promise_n from_o he_o and_o so_o num._n 14._o the_o tempt_a god_n ten_o time_n v_o 12._o be_v all_o one_o with_o not_o believe_v he_o in_o all_o his_o sign_n which_o he_o do_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o v_o 11._o and_o what_o that_o unbelief_n be_v appear_v by_o their_o word_n ver_n 2._o will_v we_o have_v die_v in_o egypt_n and_o wherefore_o have_v god_n bring_v we_o into_o this_o land_n think_v it_o seem_v that_o god_n will_v not_o go_v along_o with_o they_o but_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v devour_v by_o the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n see_v v._n 9_o so_o psal_n 78._o their_o provoke_a and_o tempt_v of_o god_n v_o 18_o 19_o be_v first_o their_o doubt_v whether_o god_n can_v and_o will_v prepare_v they_o a_o table_n v_o 20._o give_v they_o bread_n provide_v they_o flesh_n in_o the_o wilderness_n v_o 21._o when_o by_o
love_a of_o friend_n do_v courtesy_n to_o they_o that_o will_v pay_v they_o again_o be_v a_o ideote_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d populus_fw-la terrae_fw-la a_o ordinary_a vulgar_a person_n 〈◊〉_d do_v nothing_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d extraordinary_o chap._n vi_o 1._o note_v a_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o do_v not_o your_o alm_n before_o man_n to_o be_v note_n b_o see_v of_o they_o otherwise_o you_o have_v no_o reward_n of_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 1._o to_o be_v behold_v or_o look_v on_o by_o they_o if_o you_o do_v not_o thus_o take_v heed_n you_o will_v lose_v that_o reward_n which_o god_n in_o heaven_n have_v lay_v up_o for_o the_o almes-giver_n 2._o therefore_o when_o thou_o do_v thy_o alm_n do_v not_o sound_v a_o trumpet_n before_o thou_o as_o the_o hypocrite_n do_v in_o the_o note_v synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o street_n that_o they_o may_v have_v glory_n of_o man_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o they_o d._n have_v their_o reward_n paraphrase_n 2._o the_o praise_n of_o man_n be_v their_o reward_n the_o only_a one_o which_o they_o be_v likely_a to_o have_v for_o this_o performance_n which_o be_v thus_o by_o they_o design_v to_o their_o own_o glory_n from_o god_n they_o be_v sure_a to_o receive_v none_o by_o receive_v this_o they_o acquit_v god_n of_o all_o far_a payment_n 3._o but_o when_o thou_o do_v alm_n let_v not_o thy_o left_a hand_n know_v what_o thy_o right_a hand_n do_v 4._o that_o thy_o alm_n may_v be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_a himself_o shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o paraphrase_n 3_o 4._o watch_v over_o thyself_o as_o one_o that_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o fall_v into_o this_o sin_n to_o do_v work_n of_o mercy_n vainglorious_o and_o therefore_o do_v they_o as_o secret_o as_o you_o can_v and_o let_v not_o thy_o dear_a bosom-friend_n which_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o thy_o left_a hand_n know_v what_o thou_o do_v in_o this_o kind_n unless_o so_o far_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o assist_v thou_o in_o the_o do_n of_o it_o or_o as_o his_o know_v of_o it_o may_v some_o other_o way_n be_v ordinable_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n without_o any_o reflection_n of_o any_o praise_n on_o thou_o from_o he_o or_o other_o and_o god_n which_o behold_v that_o which_o be_v thus_o do_v by_o thou_o in_o secret_a shall_v give_v thou_o that_o very_a reward_n for_o thy_o secret_a piety_n which_o the_o vainglorious_a person_n design_n to_o himself_o but_o can_v so_o ready_o obtain_v as_o by_o this_o contrary_a way_n thou_o shall_v make_v payment_n to_o thou_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n 5._o and_o when_o thou_o pray_v thou_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o the_o hypocrite_n be_v for_o they_o love_v to_o pray_v note_n c_o standing_z in_o the_o concourse_n note_n d_o synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o street_n that_o they_o may_v be_v see_v of_o man_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o they_o have_v their_o reward_n paraphrase_n 5._o like_o they_o which_o pray_v with_o the_o same_o design_n that_o stage-player_n act_v on_o the_o stage_n to_o gain_v applause_n by_o so_o do_v for_o all_o their_o joy_n in_o pray_v be_v to_o do_v it_o in_o place_n of_o great_a resort_n where_o they_o may_v be_v most_o visible_a as_o they_o that_o stand_v in_o the_o meeting_n of_o two_o street_n choose_v that_o as_o the_o place_n of_o best_a advantage_n to_o be_v see_v by_o those_o which_o pass_v in_o either_o street_n 6._o but_o thou_o when_o thou_o pray_v enter_fw-la into_o thy_o closet_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v shut_v thy_o door_n pray_v to_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_n shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o paraphrase_n 6._o retire_v from_o thy_o worldly_a company_n as_o jacob_n gen._n 32._o 24._o when_o he_o wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n and_o with_o thy_o door_n shut_v to_o thou_o pray_v there_o to_o thy_o heavenly_a father_n which_o be_v himself_o invisible_a and_o see_v thou_o how_o secret_a soever_o thou_o be_v and_o consequent_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o thou_o in_o secret_a and_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o the_o beholder_n of_o thy_o closet-devotion_n shall_v reward_v thou_o before_o man_n and_o angel_n 7._o but_o when_o you_o pray_v use_v not_o note_v e_o vain_a repitition_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v for_o they_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_n paraphrase_n 7._o do_v not_o lengthen_v your_o prayer_n with_o idle_a tautology_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o heathen_a which_o think_v they_o shall_v have_v their_o prayer_n grant_v through_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o word_n use_v by_o they_o in_o their_o devotion_n 8._o be_v not_o you_o therefore_o like_a unto_o they_o for_o your_o father_n know_v what_o thing_n you_o have_v need_n of_o before_o you_o ask_v he_o paraphrase_n 8._o have_v no_o need_n of_o your_o expression_n to_o tell_v he_o your_o want_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o likely_a to_o be_v wrought_v on_o by_o the_o length_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o they_o 9_o after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o pray_v you_o our_o father_n which_o art_n in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n 10._o thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 9_o 10._o i_o shall_v therefore_o set_v you_o a_o pattern_n after_o which_o to_o form_v your_o prayer_n our_o father_n which_o remain_v in_o thy_o throne_n in_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v praise_v by_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n which_o reign_v there_o and_o be_v perfect_o obey_v grant_v that_o thy_o name_n may_v be_v hallow_v thy_o throne_n may_v be_v set_v up_o and_o acknowledge_v thy_o holy_a will_n and_o command_v obey_v here_o below_o on_o earth_n also_o by_o we_o thy_o son_n and_o servant_n sincere_o and_o ready_o and_o in_o some_o proportion_n to_o what_o be_v there_o in_o heaven_n 11._o give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o f_z daily_a bread_n paraphrase_n 11._o the_o necessary_n of_o our_o life_n from_o day_n to_o day_n or_o that_o which_o be_v proportion_v to_o every_o man_n be_v or_o sustenance_n 12._o and_o forgive_v we_o our_o debt_n as_o we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n paraphrase_n 12._o and_o punish_v not_o on_o we_o all_o the_o sin_n wherewith_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o provoke_v thou_o to_o punish_v we_o as_o we_o do_v most_o free_o forgive_v all_o the_o injury_n which_o have_v by_o other_o be_v do_v to_o we_o 13._o and_o bring_v lead_v we_o not_o note_v g_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o 〈◊〉_d evil_a for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n i._n for_o ever_o amen_n paraphrase_n 13._o permit_v we_o not_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o any_o temptation_n or_o snare_n suffer_v we_o not_o to_o be_v entangle_v in_o any_o danger_n or_o difficulty_n which_o may_v not_o be_v easy_o support_v by_o we_o 14._o for_o if_o you_o forgive_v man_n their_o trespass_n your_o heavenly_a father_n will_v also_o forgive_v you_o paraphrase_n 14._o for_o it_o have_v be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o wise_a man_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o our_o pardon_v of_o those_o who_o have_v injure_v we_o be_v reward_v by_o god_n with_o hear_v of_o our_o prayer_n for_o his_o forgiveness_n see_v ecclus_n 28._o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o &_o mat._n 5._o 7._o 15._o but_o if_o you_o forgive_v not_o man_n their_o trespass_n neither_o will_v your_o father_n forgive_v your_o trespass_n 16._o moreover_o when_o you_o fast_o be_v not_o as_o the_o hypocrite_n of_o a_o ghastly_a sad_a countenance_n for_o they_o look●_n note_v h_o disfigure_v their_o face_n that_o they_o may_v appear_v unto_o man_n to_o fast_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o they_o have_v their_o reward_n paraphrase_n 16._o they_o put_v on_o sad_a and_o mournful_a look_n appear_v in_o foul_a sordid_a garment_n and_o unwashed_a face_n which_o make_v they_o look_v lamentable_o or_o perhaps_o they_o cover_v or_o veil_v their_o face_n that_o they_o may_v discover_v or_o reveal_v their_o fast_n 17._o but_o thou_o when_o thou_o fast_o note_v i_o anoint_v thy_o head_n and_o wash_v thy_o face_n paraphrase_n 17._o behave_v thyself_o as_o upon_o a_o ordinary_a day_n for_o the_o jew_n anoint_v and_o wash_v themselves_o daily_o save_v only_o in_o time_n of_o mourning_n 18._o that_o thou_o appear_v not_o unto_o man_n to_o fast_o but_o unto_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_n shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o paraphrase_n 18._o who_o see_v thou_o when_o no_o man_n else_o do_v 19_o lay_v not_o up_o for_o yourselves_o treasure_n upon_o earth_n where_o moth_n and_o consume_v note_n k_o rust_n do_v corrupt_a and_o where_o thief_n break_v thorough_a and_o steal_v paraphrase_n 19_o it_o be_v a_o great_a vanity_n
use_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d easy_o without_o trouble_n or_o labour_n and_o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d join_v with_o it_o will_v agree_v with_o it_o very_o well_o 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o signify_v jactati_fw-la toss_v and_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o physician_n be_v the_o toss_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o tumbling_n on_o their_o bed_n but_o our_o ordinary_a read_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v loose_v one_o from_o another_o dissolve_v not_o keep_v together_o in_o company_n so_o say_v hesychius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o shall_v sure_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o each_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n go_v astray_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n here_o proper_a to_o sheep_n want_v a_o shepherd_n and_o be_v the_o notation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dispersion_n or_o disband_n act._n 5._o 36._o it_o be_v true_a the_o word_n do_v sometime_o note_v a_o dissolution_n of_o spirit_n whether_o through_o fast_v or_o go_v too_o much_o a_o faint_a as_o when_o it_o be_v join_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 12._o 3._o and_o gal._n 6._o 9_o 2_o sam._n 17._o 29._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n the_o people_n be_v hungry_a and_o weary_a or_o faint_a and_o thirsty_a in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o so_o it_o may_v signify_v c._n 15._o 32._o i_o will_v not_o send_v they_o away_o fast_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lest_o they_o faint_v by_o the_o way_n but_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o sheep_n without_o a_o shepherd_n incline_v to_o the_o former_a notion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dissolve_v stray_v one_o from_o another_o if_o that_o be_v the_o right_a read_n of_o it_o chap._n x._o 1._o and_o when_o he_o have_v call_v unto_o he_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n he_o give_v they_o power_n against_o unclean_a spirit_n to_o cast_v they_o out_o note_v a_o and_o to_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o sickness_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o disease_n paraphrase_n 1._o and_o select_v twelve_o of_o his_o follower_n who_o shall_v continual_o be_v with_o he_o and_o who_o he_o may_v send_v out_o on_o any_o message_n of_o preach_v etc._n etc._n mar._n 3._o 15._o and_o who_o shall_v after_o his_o death_n undertake_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o preach_v etc._n etc._n he_o now_o ordain_v they_o to_o that_o office_n and_o to_o that_o end_n 2._o now_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v these_o the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v note_n b_o peter_n and_o andrew_z his_o brother_n james_z the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n and_o john_n his_o brother_n paraphrase_n 2._o the_o name_n of_o the_o first_o be_v former_o simon_n or_o simeon_n which_o signify_v heark'n_a or_o obedient_a a_o name_n apt_o note_v his_o readiness_n to_o follow_v christ_n and_o become_v his_o disciple_n but_o by_o christ_n he_o be_v now_o call_v cephas_n see_v jo._n 1._o 43._o in_o syriack_n which_o signify_v a_o stone_n such_o as_o may_v be_v fit_a in_o a_o building_n to_o be_v superstruct_v upon_o christ_n the_o cornerstone_n and_o that_o in_o the_o greek_a be_v petros_n in_o english_a turn_v into_o the_o appellative_a peter_n and_o with_o he_o andrew_n his_o brother_n and_o james_n and_o john_n two_o son_n of_o zebedee_n after_o call_v boanerges_n 3._o philip_n and_o bartholomew_n thomas_n and_o matthew_n the_o publican_n james_n the_o son_n of_o alphaeus_n and_o lebbaeus_n surname_v thaddaeus_n paraphrase_n 3._o thomas_n didymus_n and_o matthew_n or_o levi_n who_o have_v be_v a_o publican_n james_n the_o son_n of_o alphaeus_n and_o lebboeus_n or_o judas_n the_o brother_n of_o james_n luke_n 6._o 16._o who_o also_o be_v surname_v thaddaeus_n 4._o simon_n the_o zealot_n note_n c_o canaanite_n and_o judas_n note_n d_o iscariot_n who_o also_o d._n betray_v he_o 5._o these_o twelve_o jesus_n send_v forth_o and_o command_v they_o say_v go_v not_o into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o into_o any_o city_n of_o the_o samaritan_n enter_v you_o not_o 6._o but_o go_v rather_o to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n paraphrase_n 5_o 6._o these_o twelve_o jesus_n furnish_v then_o with_o a_o commission_n which_o they_o shall_v use_v at_o present_a as_o on_o occasion_n he_o shall_v send_v they_o out_o to_o any_o city_n and_o after_o his_o death_n by_o go_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n over_o all_o the_o city_n of_o judaea_n against_o which_o time_n he_o now_o give_v they_o command_v say_v when_o you_o go_v about_o that_o work_n preach_v the_o gospel_n first_o to_o the_o jew_n strict_o take_v the_o city_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n through_o all_o judaea_n and_o till_o you_o have_v first_o preach_v through_o all_o their_o region_n see_v act._n 13._o 46._o go_v not_o to_o any_o of_o the_o city_n that_o border_n upon_o galilee_n nor_o to_o samaria_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o city_n from_o they_o see_v note_n on_o c._n 4._o c._n 7._o and_o as_o you_o go_v preach_v say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n paraphrase_n 7._o a_o remarkable_a visitation_n from_o heaven_n approach_v as_o of_o notable_a punishment_n upon_o the_o unreformed_a so_o of_o deliverance_n and_o protection_n to_o the_o penitent_a among_o you_o that_o shall_v timely_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 8._o heal_n the_o sick_a cleanse_v the_o leper_n raise_v the_o dead_a cast_v out_o devil_n free_o you_o have_v receive_v free_o give_v paraphrase_n 8._o and_o wherever_o you_o come_v make_v use_n of_o the_o power_n which_o i_o now_o give_v you_o with_o the_o same_o frankness_n and_o liberality_n that_o be_v use_v towards_o you_o work_v all_o manner_n of_o heal_v merciful_a miracle_n wheresoever_o you_o come_v to_o all_o that_o beg_v they_o from_o you_o 9_o provide_v neither_o gold_n nor_o silver_n nor_o brass_n in_o your_o note_n e_o purse_n paraphrase_n 9_o make_v no_o provision_n of_o money_n much_o or_o little_a 10._o nor_o scrip_n for_o your_o journey_n nor_o two_o coat_n neither_o shoe_n nor_o yet_o c._n staff_n for_o the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o meat_n paraphrase_n 10._o nor_o of_o victual_n nor_o clothes_n to_o carry_v with_o you_o nor_o of_o any_o thing_n for_o your_o defence_n by_o the_o way_n for_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o you_o may_v very_o reasonable_o expect_v to_o be_v entertain_v for_o all_o necessary_n by_o they_o who_o profit_n by_o you_o 11._o and_o into_o whatsoever_o city_n or_o town_n you_o shall_v enter_v inquire_v who_o in_o it_o be_v worthy_a and_o there_o abide_v till_o you_o go_v thence_o paraphrase_n 11._o whensoever_o therefore_o you_o come_v into_o a_o town_n or_o village_n inquire_v what_o pious_a person_n there_o be_v dwell_v there_o and_o there_o fasten_v your_o station_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v what_o they_o set_v before_o you_o lu._n 10._o 7._o and_o go_v not_o from_o that_o house_n to_o any_o other_o while_o you_o stay_v in_o the_o town_n 12._o and_o when_o you_o come_v into_o a_o house_n salute_v it_o paraphrase_n 12._o say_v peace_n that_o be_v all_o kind_n of_o prosperity_n be_v to_o this_o house_n 13._o and_o if_o the_o house_n be_v worthy_a let_v your_o peace_n come_v upon_o it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a let_v your_o peace_n return_v to_o you_o paraphrase_n 13._o and_o if_o those_o of_o the_o house_n be_v qualify_v to_o receive_v it_o your_o blessing_n shall_v rest_v upon_o it_o but_o if_o not_o your_o blessing_n shall_v return_v upon_o you_o and_o they_o shall_v receive_v no_o advantage_n but_o the_o contrary_a by_o your_o come_n among_o they_o on_o a_o design_n of_o so_o much_o charity_n 14._o and_o whosoever_o shall_v not_o receive_v you_o nor_o hear_v your_o word_n when_o you_o depart_v out_o of_o that_o house_n or_o city_n shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o your_o foot_n paraphrase_n 14._o depart_v from_o they_o and_o use_v that_o expression_n of_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n from_o your_o foot_n as_o a_o testimony_n to_o they_o that_o in_o their_o reject_v or_o not_o receive_v of_o you_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o only_a remain_a mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o as_o a_o testimony_n against_o they_o that_o will_v one_o day_n be_v bring_v to_o give_v in_o a_o sad_a evidence_n the_o dust_n shake_v off_o from_o your_o foot_n as_o it_o signify_v that_o you_o have_v be_v there_o and_o thus_o be_v fain_o to_o depart_v from_o they_o will_v fall_v very_o heavy_a upon_o they_o 15._o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o that_o city_n paraphrase_n 15_o i_o assure_v you_o the_o
only_o signify_v one_o that_o explore_v and_o examine_v and_o put_v upon_o the_o rack_n in_o which_o notion_n it_o can_v be_v take_v here_o but_o also_o a_o keeper_n of_o a_o common_a gaol_n and_o so_o it_o must_v do_v here_o the_o usage_n in_o this_o verse_n be_v proportionable_a and_o parallel_v to_o that_o which_o this_o man_n have_v deal_v to_o his_o fellow-servant_n v_o 30._o which_o be_v cast_v he_o into_o prison_n until_o he_o shall_v pay_v the_o debt_n which_o argue_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o to_o who_o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o that_o prison_n and_o no_o more_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o the_o rack_n or_o torment_v in_o this_o business_n chap._n xix_o 1._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o when_o jesus_n have_v finish_v these_o say_n he_o depart_v from_o galilee_n and_o come_v into_o the_o coast_n of_o judea_n beyond_o jordan_n paraphrase_n 1._o when_o all_o those_o occasion_n be_v over_o on_o which_o he_o speak_v those_o thing_n 2._o and_o great_a multitude_n follow_v he_o and_o he_o heal_v they_o there_o paraphrase_n 2._o no_o less_o in_o judea_n now_o then_o before_o in_o galilee_n 3._o the_o pharisee_n also_o come_v unto_o he_o tempt_v he_o and_o say_v be_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o every_o cause_n 4._o and_o he_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o have_v you_o not_o read_v that_o he_o which_o make_v they_o at_o the_o beginning_n make_v they_o male_a and_o female_a 5._o and_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n shall_v a_o man_n leave_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o shall_v cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o they_o twain_o shall_v be_v one_o flesh_n paraphrase_n 4_o 5._o you_o can_v but_o remember_v the_o strict_a union_n and_o conjunction_n betwixt_o man_n &_o wife_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n gen._n 1._o 27._o where_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v create_v we_o find_v this_o conclusion_n make_v by_o adam_n or_o rather_o the_o historian_n gen._n 2._o 24._o that_o the_o man_n be_v to_o forsake_v all_o and_o cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o continue_v with_o she_o as_o inseparable_o as_o with_o another_o part_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n see_v note_n on_o lu._n 16._o b._n 6._o wherefore_o they_o be_v no_o more_o twain_o but_o one_o flesh_n what_o therefore_o god_n have_v join_v together_o let_v no_o man_n put_v a_o sunder_o paraphrase_n 6._o and_o therefore_o thus_o be_v they_o to_o be_v think_v of_o as_o two_o by_o god_n unite_v into_o one_o and_o then_o sure_a that_o which_o have_v be_v thus_o institute_v by_o god_n must_v not_o by_o man_n be_v alter_v it_o ought_v still_o to_o continue_v among_o you_o as_o it_o be_v first_o institute_v it_o be_v utter_o unlawful_a unless_o in_o case_n of_o falseness_n to_o the_o husband_n bed_n mat._n 5._o 32._o to_o put_v the_o wife_n away_o 7._o they_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v moses_n then_o command_v to_o give_v a_o writing_n of_o divorcement_n and_o to_o put_v she_o away_o paraphrase_n 7._o to_o this_o the_o pharisee_n object_v say_v what_o account_v then_o be_v to_o be_v give_v of_o that_o precept_n in_o the_o law_n wherein_o moses_n appoint_v the_o husband_n in_o some_o case_n mention_v by_o he_o deut._n 24._o 1._o to_o give_v a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n unto_o the_o wife_n in_o this_o manner_n permit_v he_o to_o put_v she_o away_o 8._o he_o say_v unto_o they_o moses_n because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o your_o heart_n suffer_v you_o to_o put_v away_o your_o wife_n but_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o paraphrase_n 8._o god_n in_o the_o moysaicall_a oeconomy_n know_v you_o jew_n to_o be_v so_o imperswasible_a and_o obstinate_o bend_v to_o your_o own_o lust_n and_o rage_n that_o in_o case_n you_o be_v oblige_v to_o live_v with_o hate_a wife_n and_o not_o permit_v divorce_n it_o will_v probable_o cause_v in_o you_o some_o great_a sin_n for_o the_o prevent_v hereof_o allow_v a_o dispensation_n in_o his_o point_n tolerate_a divorce_n and_o take_v so_o much_o pity_n and_o care_n of_o the_o oppress_a hate_a wife_n as_o to_o provide_v this_o kind_n of_o relief_n for_o she_o command_v to_o give_v a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n thereby_o as_o by_o a_o act_n of_o manumission_n to_o restore_v her_o liberty_n to_o she_o with_o all_o decent_o to_o send_v she_o out_o of_o the_o family_n and_o in_o some_o sort_n endow_v she_o but_o this_o you_o see_v v._n 4_o 5._o be_v very_o distant_a from_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o marriage_n 9_o and_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whosoever_o shall_v put_v away_o his_o wife_n except_o it_o be_v for_o fornication_n and_o shall_v marry_v another_o commit_v adultery_n and_o who_o so_o marry_v she_o that_o be_v put_v away_o do_v commit_v adultery_n paraphrase_n 9_o and_o according_o i_o now_o define_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v use_v that_o liberty_n so_o frequent_a among_o you_o to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o any_o lesser_a cause_n than_o that_o of_o fornication_n and_o then_o think_v it_o free_a for_o he_o to_o marry_v again_o that_o man_n by_o marry_v another_o whilst_o his_o wife_n be_v alive_a from_o the_o obligation_n to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v free_v be_v consequent_o guilty_a of_o adultery_n and_o so_o likewise_o he_o that_o marry_v she_o that_o be_v divorce_v take_v another_o man_n wife_n which_o be_v adultery_n also_o 10._o his_o disciple_n say_v unto_o he_o if_o the_o case_n of_o the_o man_n be_v so_o with_o his_o wife_n it_n be_v not_o good_a to_o marry_v paraphrase_n 10._o hereupon_o his_o own_o disciple_n begin_v to_o object_n that_o if_o marriage_n bring_v such_o a_o inseparable_a conjunction_n with_o it_o then_o sure_a the_o inconvenience_n and_o hazard_n of_o marriage_n above_o the_o advantage_n and_o conveniency_n of_o it_o will_v be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v more_o prudent_a not_o to_o marry_v at_o all_o then_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o such_o possible_a inconvenience_n 11._o but_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o all_o man_n can_v receive_v this_o say_n save_v they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v paraphrase_n 11._o to_o this_o objection_n he_o give_v this_o answer_n that_o all_o man_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o that_o prudentiall_a ap_fw-mi horisme_n that_o a_o single_a life_n be_v more_o profitable_a and_o fit_a for_o their_o turn_n than_o marriage_n but_o those_o only_a who_o god_n have_v some_o way_n more_o then_o ordinary_o fit_v for_o it_o by_o some_o special_a gift_n 12._o for_o there_o be_v some_o note_n a_o eunuch_n which_o be_v so_o bear_v from_o their_o mother_n womb_n and_o there_o be_v some_o eunuch_n which_o be_v make_v eunuch_n of_o man_n and_o there_o be_v eunuch_n which_o have_v make_v themselves_o eunuch_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n sake_n he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o receive_v it_o let_v he_o receive_v it_o paraphrase_n 12._o for_o some_o live_v unmarried_a as_o be_v natural_o enable_v to_o do_v so_o chaste_o and_o without_o great_a difficulty_n some_o as_o be_v by_o man_n disable_v of_o which_o sort_n there_o be_v very_o many_o among_o the_o heathen_n ordinary_o call_v eunuch_n some_o out_o of_o firmness_n of_o resolution_n have_v get_v that_o mastery_n over_o themselves_o that_o they_o can_v live_v chaste_o in_o a_o single_a life_n and_o do_v so_o on_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v have_v full_a vacancy_n to_o set_v themselves_o apart_o for_o the_o duty_n of_o christianity_n now_o he_o that_o find_v this_o agreeable_a to_o his_o condition_n and_o can_v thus_o conquer_v and_o subdue_v himself_o he_o may_v do_v according_o if_o he_o please_v and_o shall_v do_v well_o and_o wise_o in_o so_o do_v 13._o then_o be_v there_o bring_v unto_o he_o little_a child_n that_o he_o shall_v put_v his_o hand_n on_o they_o and_o pray_v and_o the_o disciple_n rebuke_v they_o paraphrase_n 13._o that_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n he_o will_v bestow_v his_o benediction_n upon_o they_o and_o his_o disciple_n will_v have_v chide_v they_o away_o 14._o but_o jesus_n say_v suffer_v little_a child_n and_o forbid_v they_o not_o to_o come_v unto_o i_o for_o of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 14._o their_o meekness_n humility_n and_o docility_n be_v the_o temper_n which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o like_a that_o which_o be_v require_v of_o disciple_n of_o christ_n 15_o and_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o they_o and_o depart_v thence_o paraphrase_n 15._o and_o use_v that_o ceremony_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n frequent_a among_o the_o jew_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o benediction_n he_o bestow_v his_o blessing_n upon_o they_o 16._o and_o behold_v one_o come_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o good_a master_n what_o good_a thing_n shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v
be_v thou_o paraphrase_n 24_o 25._o i_o have_v have_v experirience_n of_o thy_o severity_n in_o require_v increase_n from_o thy_o servant_n far_o above_o that_o which_o thou_o intruste_v to_o they_o and_o i_o for_o fear_n of_o lose_v my_o talon_n and_o provoke_v thy_o displeasure_n thereby_o think_v it_o best_a to_o dig_v a_o hole_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o lie_v it_o up_o safe_a and_o according_o there_o be_v thy_o talon_n safe_a again_o though_o without_o any_o increase_n of_o it_o 26._o his_o lord_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o wicked_a and_o slothful_a servant_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o reap_v where_o i_o sow_v not_o and_o gather_v where_o i_o have_v not_o strew_v paraphrase_n 26._o thy_o word_n acknowledge_v thou_o to_o have_v have_v actual_o in_o thy_o thought_n that_o i_o that_o be_v one_o that_o deal_v in_o merchandise_n and_o make_v of_o gain_n will_v expect_v profit_n of_o that_o which_o i_o commit_v to_o thou_o 27._o thou_o ought_v therefore_o to_o have_v put_v my_o money_n to_o the_o exchanger_n and_o then_o at_o my_o come_n i_o shall_v have_v receive_v i_o own_o with_o usury_n paraphrase_n 27._o money-merchant_n see_v note_n on_o c._n 21._o b._n and_o then_o at_o my_o come_n home_o i_o shall_v have_v have_v i_o own_o again_o and_o some_o increase_n with_o it_o 28._o take_v therefore_o the_o talon_n from_o he_o and_o give_v it_o unto_o he_o which_o have_v ten_o talent_n 29._o for_o unto_o every_o one_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o 〈◊〉_d he_o shall_v have_v abundance_n but_o from_o he_o that_o have_v not_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o even_o that_o which_o he_o have_v paraphrase_n 29._o for_o to_o he_o that_o use_v and_o improve_v god_n grace_n shall_v by_o degree_n be_v give_v so_o much_o that_o at_o the_o last_o he_o shall_v have_v all_o abundance_n but_o from_o he_o that_o do_v not_o so_o that_o which_o have_v former_o be_v give_v he_o shall_v be_v withdraw_v 30._o and_o cast_v you_o the_o unprofitable_a servant_n into_o outer_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n paraphrase_n 30._o as_o for_o he_o that_o make_v no_o use_n of_o nor_o bring_v in_o any_o increase_n to_o his_o master_n from_o the_o talent_n entrust_v to_o he_o the_o idle_a disobedient_a servant_n see_v note_n on_o luke_n 17_o a._n let_v he_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o dungeon_n never_o to_o come_v out_o again_o that_o emblem_n of_o eternal_a hell_n the_o place_n of_o all_o pain_n and_o horror_n 31._o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n with_o he_o then_o shall_v he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n paraphrase_n 31._o all_o this_o parable_n from_o ver_fw-la 13._o to_o this_o place_n be_v put_v as_o in_o a_o parenthesis_n christ_n here_o proceed_v but_o when_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n whether_o to_o execute_v vengeance_n on_o this_o people_n or_o of_o which_o that_o be_v a_o emblem_n to_o doom_v every_o man_n for_o his_o future_a eternal_a be_v then_o shall_v his_o appearance_n be_v glorious_a and_o full_a of_o majesty_n 32._o and_o before_o he_o shall_v be_v gather_v all_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v separate_v they_o one_o from_o another_o as_o a_o shepherd_n divide_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n paraphrase_n 32._o and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n beleiver_n and_o unbeleiver_n and_o all_o other_o man_n that_o have_v ever_o live_v in_o this_o world_n every_o one_o have_v have_v some_o talon_n to_o trade_n with_o entrust_v to_o he_o by_o god_n shall_v by_o the_o angel_n send_v out_o to_o that_o purpose_n ch_z 13._o 41._o be_v gather_v before_o he_o 33._o and_o he_o shall_v set_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n but_o the_o goat_n on_o the_o left_a paraphrase_n 33._o and_o all_o the_o meek_a obedient_a follower_n and_o disciple_n of_o his_o he_o shall_v place_v in_o a_o state_n of_o great_a dignity_n and_o preferment_n but_o all_o the_o unfaithful_a disobedient_a shall_v be_v cast_v into_o judgement_n 34._o then_o shall_v the_o king_n say_v unto_o they_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n paraphrase_n 34._o and_o then_o as_o a_o king_n or_o judge_n shall_v he_o distribute_v the_o joy_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o before_o all_o eternity_n be_v design_v to_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o all_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n 35._o for_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o meat_n i_o be_v thirsty_a and_o you_o give_v i_o drink_v i_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o you_o take_v i_o in_o paraphrase_n 35._o according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n perform_v in_o this_o life_n express_v here_o by_o feed_v and_o entertain_v of_o christ_n 36._o naked_a and_o you_o clothe_v i_o i_o be_v sick_a and_o you_o visit_v i_o i_o be_v in_o prison_n and_o you_o come_v unto_o i_o paraphrase_n 36._o and_o again_o of_o clothing_n his_o naked_a body_n tend_v he_o when_o he_o be_v sick_a relieve_v assist_v provide_v for_o he_o and_o visit_v he_o in_o restraint_n 37._o then_o shall_v the_o righteous_a answer_v he_o say_v lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a and_o feed_v thou_o when_o see_v we_o thou_o thirsty_a and_o give_v thou_o drink_v paraphrase_n 37._o then_o shall_v those_o humble_a faithful_a disciple_n of_o he_o as_o not_o be_v conscious_a of_o any_o such_o act_n of_o service_n or_o charity_n show_v to_o christ_n 38._o when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o stranger_n and_o take_v thou_o in_o or_o naked_a and_o clothe_v thou_o 39_o or_o when_o see_v we_o thou_o sick_a or_o in_o prison_n and_o come_v unto_o thou_o 40._o and_o the_o king_n shall_v answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o have_v do_v it_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o my_o brethren_n you_o have_v do_v it_o unto_o i_o paraphrase_n 40._o to_o the_o mean_a man_n alive_a partaker_n of_o that_o humane_a nature_n which_o i_o have_v honour_v by_o my_o assume_v it_o 41._o then_o shall_v he_o say_v also_o unto_o they_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n paraphrase_n 41._o you_o be_v a_o accurse_a number_n of_o man_n adjudge_v to_o eternal_a hell_n which_o be_v not_o original_o create_v or_o design_v for_o you_o or_o any_o of_o mankind_n but_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n and_o those_o angel_n that_o sin_v and_o fall_v with_o he_o but_o now_o by_o your_o wilful_a default_n be_v become_v your_o portion_n also_o 42._o for_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o no_o meat_n i_o be_v thirsty_a and_o you_o give_v i_o no_o drink_n paraphrase_n 42._o and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o just_a reward_n for_o your_o do_n your_o impiety_n and_o uncharitableness_n of_o all_o sort_n for_o when_o i_o be_v ready_a to_o famish_v for_o hunger_n you_o will_v spare_v nothing_o out_o of_o your_o plenty_n to_o relieve_v i_o 43._o i_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o you_o take_v i_o not_o in_o naked_a and_o you_o clothe_v i_o not_o sick_z and_o in_o prison_n and_o you_o visit_v i_o not_o 44._o then_o shall_v they_o also_o answer_v he_o say_v lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a or_o thirsty_a or_o a_o stranger_n or_o naked_a or_o sick_a or_o in_o prison_n and_o do_v not_o minister_v unto_o thou_o paraphrase_n 44._o and_o then_o they_o as_o if_o not_o conscious_a of_o this_o impiety_n shall_v begin_v to_o expostulate_v that_o they_o never_o deal_v thus_o unkind_o with_o christ_n never_o see_v he_o in_o any_o distress_n without_o relieve_v he_o 45._o then_o shall_v he_o answer_v they_o say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o 46._o and_o these_o shall_v go_v away_o into_o everlasting_a punishment_n but_o the_o righteous_a into_o life_n eternal_a chap._n xxvi_o 1._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o jesus_n have_v finish_v all_o these_o say_n he_o say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n 2._o you_o know_v that_o after_o two_o day_n be_v the_o note_n a_o passover_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d betray_v to_o be_v crucify_v paraphrase_n 2._o which_o be_v a_o time_n of_o execution_n among_o the_o jew_n christ_n shall_v at_o that_o time_n certain_o be_v deliver_v up_o by_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o roman_n to_o die_v after_o their_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o be_v fasten_v on_o a_o cross_n etc._n etc._n 3._o then_o assemble_v together_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o
he_o for_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v psal_n 10._o 7._o and_o be_v render_v by_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d malediction_n and_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o hiphil_n be_v literal_o and_o critical_o to_o make_v swear_v to_o adjure_v and_o be_v express_v by_o s._n paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o thess_n 5._o 27._o i_o bind_v you_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n the_o law_n concern_v this_o we_o have_v levit._n 5._o 1._o if_o a_o soul_n shall_v offend_v and_o shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o adjuration_n or_o execration_n and_o so_o numb_a 5._o 21._o where_o we_o have_v not_o simple_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d execration_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o oath_n of_o execration_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 64._o power_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o power_n be_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v call_v power_n by_o the_o hebrew_n so_o jarchi_n on_o numb_a 7._o 10._o moses_n receive_v it_o not_o from_o their_o hand_n till_o he_o be_v command_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o power_n 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o right_a hand_n of_o greatness_n heb._n 8._o 1._o so_o 1_o pet._n 4._o 14._o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 65._o rent_n his_o clothes_n that_o rend_n of_o clothes_n be_v a_o expression_n of_o indignation_n holy_a zeal_n and_o piety_n among_o the_o jew_n express_v on_o several_a occasion_n especial_o of_o grief_n in_o humiliation_n and_o of_o anger_n on_o the_o hear_n of_o any_o blasphemous_a speech_n be_v ordinary_o know_v by_o all_o only_o the_o difficulty_n here_o be_v how_o this_o can_v be_v fit_a or_o proper_a for_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o do_v which_o be_v make_v unlawful_a for_o the_o priest_n levit._n 10._o 6._o 21._o 10._o thus_o have_v baronius_n object_v an●al_a t._n 1._o an._n ch._n 34._o but_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a that_o that_o prohibition_n in_o levit._n extend_v only_o to_o the_o not_o tear_v of_o the_o sacerdotal_a garment_n that_o be_v of_o those_o which_o be_v use_v only_o in_o the_o priest_n office_n exod._n 28._o 32._o and_o 39_o 23._o and_o agreeable_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o rule_n qui_fw-la dilaceraverit_fw-la vestes_fw-la sacerdotales_fw-la vapulabit_fw-la he_o that_o shall_v tear_v any_o of_o the_o priest_n garment_n shall_v be_v beat_v beside_o this_o it_o be_v indeed_o also_o unlawful_a to_o enter_v into_o the_o court_n of_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o temple_n with_o rend_a clothes_n but_o that_o be_v unlawful_a to_o any_o other_o as_o well_o as_o to_o a_o priest_n who_o differ_v not_o from_o other_o in_o this_o matter_n save_v only_o in_o this_o one_o circumstance_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n tear_v his_o garment_n from_o the_o bottom_n to_o the_o top_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o all_o other_o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 67._o smite_v he_o etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v by_o hesychius_n render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o rod_n or_o wand_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o strike_v with_o a_o rod_n or_o to_o thresh_v to_o use_v such_o a_o stick_n as_o be_v ordinary_a in_o thresh_v out_o corn_n a_o staff_n or_o cudgel_n &_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o strike_v and_o to_o mock_v but_o then_o the_o old_a greek_a and_o latin_a lexicon_n have_v it_o otherwise_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d expalmo_fw-it alapo_fw-it to_o box_n or_o strike_v with_o the_o hand_n and_o so_o 6_o s._n augustine_n read_v it_o si_fw-mi cum_fw-la expalmaretur_fw-la voluit_fw-la se_fw-la vindicare_fw-la will_v he_o revenge_v himself_o when_o he_o be_v box_v so_o nonnus_n on_o john_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o rude_a man_n strike_v his_o divine_a cheek_n with_o his_o audacious_a hand_n and_o sedulius_n non_fw-la denique_fw-la passim_fw-la well_fw-mi colaphis_fw-la pulsare_fw-la caput_fw-la vel_fw-la caedere_fw-la palmis_fw-la aut_fw-la spuere_fw-la in_o faciem_fw-la plebs_fw-la execranda_fw-la quievit_fw-la the_o accurse_a multitude_n cease_v not_o to_o cuff_v he_o or_o to_o strike_v he_o with_o the_o palm_n of_o their_o hand_n or_o to_o spit_v on_o he_o and_o so_o suidas_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o signify_v to_o strike_v the_o cheek_n with_o the_o bare_a hand_n and_o so_o juvencus_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n et_fw-la palmae_fw-la in_o malis_fw-la colaphíque_fw-la in_o vertice_fw-la crebri_fw-la insultant_fw-la and_o prophetabis_fw-la cujus_fw-la te_fw-la palma_fw-la cecidit_fw-la their_o hand_n insult_v on_o his_o cheek_n and_o prophesy_v who_o hand_n strike_v thou_o and_o nonnus_n again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o after_o another_o by_o turn_n give_v he_o blow_n on_o the_o cheek_n chap._n xxvii_o 1._o when_o the_o morning_n be_v come_v all_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n take_v counsel_n against_o jesus_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n paraphrase_n 1._o and_o have_v retire_v for_o a_o while_o the_o whole_a sanhedrim_n consist_v of_o chief_a priest_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n etc._n etc._n meet_v together_o in_o counsel_n and_o there_o decree_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o according_o that_o they_o will_v press_v the_o roman_a procurator_n to_o do_v justice_n on_o he_o capital_o 2._o and_o when_o they_o have_v bind_v he_o they_o lead_v he_o away_o and_o deliver_v he_o to_o pontius_n pilate_n the_o governor_n paraphrase_n 2._o and_o according_o as_o one_o praecondemn_v by_o they_o they_o bind_v he_o and_o 3._o then_o judas_n that_o have_v betray_v he_o when_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v condemn_a repent_v himself_o and_o bring_v again_o the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n to_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n paraphrase_n 3._o cast_v by_o the_o jew_n sanhedrim_n wish_v that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v it_o and_o be_v exceed_o grieve_v and_o afflict_v in_o mind_n 4._o say_v i_o have_v sin_v in_o that_o i_o have_v betray_v the_o innocent_a blood_n and_o they_o say_v what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o see_v thou_o to_o that_o paraphrase_n 4._o i_o have_v commit_v a_o foul_a sin_n in_o deliver_v up_o into_o your_o hand_n a_o most_o innocent_a person_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 5._o and_o he_o cast_v down_o the_o piece_n of_o silver_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o suffocation_n depart_v and_o go_v and_o note_v a_o hang_v himself_o paraphrase_n 5._o and_o when_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o money_n he_o will_v not_o carry_v it_o back_o again_o but_o throw_v it_o down_o as_o a_o detestable_a thing_n that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o rid_v his_o hand_n of_o and_o leave_v it_o in_o the_o temple_n depart_v to_o his_o home_n and_o be_v there_o so_o affect_v with_o sorrow_n and_o horror_n and_o despair_n that_o in_o a_o fit_a of_o melancholy_n or_o suffocation_n he_o sudden_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o face_n and_o burst_v and_o die_v act_v 1._o 18._o 6._o and_o the_o chief-priest_n take_v the_o silver_n piece_n and_o say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v they_o into_o the_o treasury_n because_o it_o be_v the_o note_n b_o price_n of_o blood_n paraphrase_n 6._o and_o they_o of_o the_o sanhedrim_n v._n 3._o see_v the_o money_n thus_o leave_v in_o the_o temple_n have_v some_o thought_n of_o put_v it_o into_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o temple_n but_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v money_n give_v for_o the_o deliver_v one_o up_o to_o death_n they_o conceive_v it_o not_o holy_a enough_o to_o be_v put_v in_o there_o 7._o and_o they_o take_v counsel_n and_o buy_v with_o they_o the_o potter_n field_n to_o bury_v note_n c_o stranger_n in_o paraphrase_n 7._o and_o upon_o consultation_n they_o decree_v and_o resolve_v in_o counsel_n that_o the_o money_n which_o they_o in_o this_o hurry_n do_v not_o neglect_v the_o dispose_n of_o shall_v be_v lay_v out_o for_o a_o pious_a use_n to_o buy_v a_o piece_n of_o ground_n which_o have_v be_v the_o potter_n for_o stranger_n to_o bury_v their_o dead_a in_o 8._o wherefore_o that_o field_n be_v call_v the_o field_n of_o blood_n until_o this_o day_n paraphrase_n 8._o this_o field_n be_v by_o the_o people_n for_o all_o the_o hypocrifie_n of_o the_o sanhedrim_n 9_o then_o be_v fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o jeremy_n the_o prophet_n say_v and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o take_v the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n the_o price_n of_o he_o that_o be_v value_v who_o they_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v value_v paraphrase_n 9_o first_o by_o jeremiah_n in_o some_o prophecy_n of_o his_o not_o now_o remain_v but_o by_o tradition_n fame_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o he_o and_o from_o those_o which_o hear_v it_o from_o jeremy_n receive_v and_o after_o repeat_v by_o zachary_n c._n 11._o 12._o
as_o many_o other_o thing_n of_o jeremies_n be_v which_o make_v the_o jew_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o jeremy_n rest_v on_o zachary_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v here_o cite_v as_o jeremies_n and_o not_o as_o zacharies_n see_v note_n on_o heb._n 8._o a._n 10._o and_o give_v they_o for_o the_o potter_n field_n as_o the_o lord_n appoint_v i_o 11._o and_o jesus_n stand_v before_o the_o governor_n and_o the_o governor_n ask_v he_o say_v be_v thou_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o say_v paraphrase_n 11._o and_o jesus_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o bar_n and_o examine_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n so_o long_o expect_v by_o that_o people_n and_o he_o answer_v yes_o i_o be_o 12._o and_o when_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n he_o answer_v nothing_o paraphrase_n 12._o and_o to_o all_o the_o accusation_n send_v in_o against_o he_o by_o the_o sanhedrim_n whether_o by_o a_o write_a bill_n of_o they_o or_o by_o some_o attorney_n instruct_v by_o they_o themselves_z coming_z not_o in_o joh._n 18._o 28._o he_o make_v no_o kind_n of_o reply_n 13._o then_o say_v pilate_n unto_o he_o hear_v thou_o not_o how_o many_o thing_n they_o witness_v against_o thou_o paraphrase_n 13._o do_v thou_o not_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v apology_n for_o thyself_o hear_v what_o charge_n be_v send_v in_o by_o the_o sanhedrim_n and_o those_o sufficient_o testify_v against_o thou_o 14._o and_o he_o answer_v he_o to_o never_o a_o word_n insomuch_o that_o the_o governor_n marvel_v great_o paraphrase_n 14._o all_o this_o will_v not_o move_v christ_n to_o make_v any_o apology_n or_o plea_n for_o himself_o at_o which_o pilate_n extreme_o wonder_v 15._o now_o at_o that_o feast_n the_o governor_n be_v note_n d_o wont_a to_o release_v unto_o the_o people_n a_o prisoner_n who_o they_o will_v paraphrase_n 15._o now_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o yearly_a passover_n a_o solemn_a feast_n of_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v customary_a with_o the_o procurator_n to_o gratify_v the_o jew_n by_o pardon_v some_o prisoner_n of_o that_o nation_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o great_a obligation_n to_o they_o to_o give_v they_o liberty_n to_o choose_v who_o they_o please_v by_o vote_n of_o the_o people_n 16._o and_o they_o have_v then_o a_o notable_a prisoner_n call_v barrabas_n 17._o therefore_o when_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o pilate_n say_v unto_o they_o who_o will_v you_o that_o i_o release_v unto_o you_o barrabas_n or_o jesus_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n paraphrase_n 17_o which_o by_o many_o be_v take_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n 18._o for_o he_o know_v that_o for_o envy_v they_o have_v deliver_v he_o paraphrase_n 18._o that_o which_o move_v he_o to_o make_v this_o proposal_n be_v because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v matter_n of_o malice_n in_o some_o great_a person_n among_o they_o wherein_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o concern_v that_o christ_n be_v thus_o persecute_v and_o so_o that_o the_o multitude_n may_v probable_o be_v please_v to_o have_v he_o release_v 19_o when_o he_o be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o judgement_n seat_n his_o wife_n send_v unto_o he_o say_v have_v thou_o nothing_o to_o do_v with_o that_o just_a man_n for_o i_o have_v suffer_v many_o thing_n this_o day_n in_o a_o dream_n because_o of_o he_o paraphrase_n 19_o and_o this_o he_o will_v have_v be_v very_o glad_a of_o because_o when_o he_o be_v on_o the_o bench_n his_o wife_n send_v he_o a_o message_n how_o she_o have_v be_v much_o trouble_v in_o a_o dream_n and_o by_o those_o terror_n incite_v to_o stop_v he_o from_o give_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o jesus_n 20._o but_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n persuade_v the_o multitude_n that_o they_o shall_v ask_v barrabas_n and_o destroy_v jesus_n paraphrase_n 20._o but_o they_o of_o the_o sanhedrim_n prevail_v with_o the_o multitude_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v choice_n of_o barrabas_n and_o by_o cry_n and_o clamour_n require_v jesus_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 21._o then_o the_o governor_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o whether_o of_o the_o twain_o will_v you_o that_o i_o release_v unto_o you_o they_o say_v barrabas_n paraphrase_n 21._o do_v you_o choose_v to_o have_v release_v or_o pardon_v according_a to_o that_o custom_n v_o 15._o 22._o pilate_n say_v unto_o they_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v then_o with_o jesus_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n they_o all_o say_v unto_o he_o let_v he_o be_v crucify_v paraphrase_n 22._o the_o whole_a multitude_n instigate_v by_o the_o sanhedrim_n cry_v out_o v_o 23._o 23._o and_o the_o governor_n say_v why_o what_o evil_a have_v he_o do_v but_o they_o cry_v out_o the_o more_o say_v let_v he_o be_v crucify_v paraphrase_n 23._o but_o the_o more_o pilate_n seem_v to_o believe_v he_o guiltless_a the_o more_o violent_a be_v they_o in_o their_o clamour_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n 24._o when_o pilate_n see_v that_o he_o can_v prevail_v nothing_o but_o that_o rather_o a_o tumult_n be_v make_v he_o take_v water_n and_o wash_v his_o hand_n before_o the_o multitude_n say_v i_o be_o innocent_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o this_o just_a person_n see_v you_o to_o it_o paraphrase_n 24._o when_o pilate_n discern_v this_o that_o his_o express_v his_o opinion_n of_o christ_n innocence_n do_v not_o at_o all_o allay_v the_o people_n violence_n but_o that_o contrariwise_o it_o make_v they_o ready_a to_o mutiny_v put_v they_o into_o a_o rage_n and_o distemper_n he_o solemn_o call_v for_o water_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o they_o all_o wash_v his_o hand_n desirous_a thereby_o to_o free_v himself_o of_o all_o guilt_n in_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o say_v i_o will_v be_v guiltless_a it_o shall_v or_o let_v the_o whole_a matter_n lie_v upon_o you_o 25._o then_o answer_v all_o the_o people_n and_o say_v his_o blood_n be_v on_o we_o and_o on_o our_o child_n paraphrase_n 25._o and_o the_o whole_a people_n cry_v out_o let_v it_o be_v so_o what_o ever_o guilt_n there_o be_v in_o put_v he_o to_o death_n let_v it_o lie_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o posterity_n 26._o then_o release_v he_o barrabas_n unto_o they_o and_o when_o he_o have_v scourge_v jesus_n he_o deliver_v he_o to_o be_v crucify_v paraphrase_n 26._o though_o he_o have_v intend_v to_o inflict_v no_o other_o punishment_n on_o christ_n but_o that_o of_o scourge_v lu._n 23._o 16_o 22._o and_o therefore_o it_o appear_v joh._n 19_o 1._o that_o pilate_n scourge_v he_o long_o before_o he_o sentence_v he_o to_o crucifixion_n v_o 16._o nay_o after_o the_o scourge_v he_o be_v very_a industrion_n to_o have_v save_v his_o life_n v_o 4_o 8_o 12._o and_o mat._n 23._o 24._o scourge_v be_v the_o punishment_n of_o some_o that_o be_v not_o kill_v yet_o upon_o this_o importunity_n of_o the_o people_n which_o he_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o resist_v to_o that_o of_o scourge_v he_o superad_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n crucifixion_n also_o which_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v scourge_v preparative_n to_o it_o see_v note_n on_o lu._n 23._o b._n 27._o then_o the_o soldier_n of_o the_o governor_n take_v jesus_n into_o the_o common_a hall_n and_o gather_v unto_o he_o the_o whole_a band_n of_o soldier_n paraphrase_n 27._o the_o whole_a band_n that_o guard_v the_o temple_n come_v and_o surround_v he_o as_o a_o guard_n to_o a_o malefactor_n 28._o and_o they_o strip_v he_o and_o put_v on_o he_o a_o scarlet_a robe_n paraphrase_n 28._o robe_n of_o state_n such_o as_o person_n of_o honour_n wear_v in_o public_a assembly_n 29._o and_o when_o they_o have_v plait_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n they_o put_v it_o upon_o his_o head_n and_o a_o reed_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o they_o bow_v the_o knee_n before_o he_o and_o mock_v he_o say_v hail_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n paraphrase_n 29._o and_o to_o make_v he_o somewhat_o which_o may_v look_v like_o a_o crown_n they_o take_v thorn_n and_o plait_v they_o into_o that_o form_n and_o put_v it_o on_o his_o head_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o sceptre_n in_o his_o hand_n they_o give_v he_o a_o reed_n and_o make_v he_o hold_v it_o in_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o a_o kind_n of_o state_n 30._o and_o they_o spit_v upon_o he_o and_o take_v the_o reed_n and_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o head_n 31._o and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v mock_v he_o they_o take_v the_o robe_n off_o from_o he_o and_o put_v his_o own_o raiment_n on_o he_o and_o lead_v he_o away_o to_o crucify_v he_o paraphrase_n 30_o 31._o and_o have_v thus_o deal_v with_o he_o as_o a_o mock-king_n and_o deride_v he_o long_o enough_o that_o way_n they_o then_o tooun_v the_o reed_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o spit_v upon_o he_o and_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o head_n and_o
how_o do_v i_o desire_v that_o it_o be_v already_o kindle_v but_o as_o all_o th●se_a come_v to_o the_o same_o sense_n so_o the_o former_a seem_v the_o more_o easy_a and_o natural_a unless_o we_o prefer_v that_o other_o read_v which_o we_o find_v in_o marcus_n eremita_n d._n de_fw-fr baptis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o i_o will_v be_v please_v or_o glad_a if_o it_o be_v already_o kindle_v as_o for_o the_o fire_n here_o although_o that_o may_v signify_v only_o a_o purgative_a fire_n and_o intimate_v christ_n desire_n of_o purify_n the_o world_n from_o the_o dross_n of_o sin_n for_o which_o he_o come_v tit._n 2._o 14._o and_o to_o refer_v to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o appear_v in_o fire_n act_n 2._o yet_o it_o rather_o seem_v to_o be_v restrain_v by_o the_o context_n to_o the_o fire_n of_o persecution_n all_o one_o with_o division_n v._n 51._o which_o though_o it_o cause_v some_o smart_n yet_o it_o have_v very_o useful_a quality_n as_o that_o of_o explore_v or_o try_v in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 19_o there_o must_v be_v division_n among_o you_o that_o they_o that_o be_v approve_v try_v and_o find_v right_o in_o this_o fire_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a among_o you_o and_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v consequent_a to_o christ_n come_n see_v v_o 52._o etc._n etc._n &_o lu._n 2._o 35._o that_o of_o try_v heb._n 4._o 12._o lu._n 2._o 35._o who_o be_v faithful_a adherent_n to_o he_o who_o not_o which_o be_v the_o special_a work_n of_o fire_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o persecution_n for_o christ_n sake_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 50._o a_o baptism_n the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v all_o one_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o note_n of_o the_o future_a so_o 2_o esdr_n 4._o 45._o habet_fw-la venire_fw-la be_v use_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o come_v and_o in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o shall_v rise_v be_v render_v in_o latin_a habent_fw-la resurgere_fw-la so_o in_o 29._o chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o 30._o oft_o in_o lactantius_n quòd_fw-la carne_fw-la indui_fw-la haberet_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la that_o be_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v incarnate_a and_o again_o quòd_fw-la plurimae_fw-la sectae_fw-la &_o haereses_fw-la haberent_fw-la existere_fw-la that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o sect_n and_o heresy_n chap._n xiii_o 1._o there_o be_v present_a at_o that_o season_n some_o that_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o galilean_n who_o blood_n pilate_n have_v mingle_v with_o their_o sacrifice_n paraphrase_n 1._o galilean_n a_o faction_n of_o judas_n gaulonita_n which_o teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n who_o it_o be_v think_v pilate_n set_v upon_o and_o kill_v when_o they_o be_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o pour_v out_o their_o blood_n as_o the_o blood_n of_o beast_n be_v pour_v out_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n 2._o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v unto_o they_o suppose_v you_o that_o these_o galilean_n be_v sinner_n above_o all_o the_o galilean_n because_o they_o suffer_v such_o thing_n 3._o i_o tell_v you_o nay_o but_o except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v paraphrase_n 3._o if_o you_o continue_v your_o present_a wicked_a practice_n raise_v sedition_n under_o pretence_n of_o piety_n as_o frequent_o you_o be_v apt_a to_o do_v see_v titus_n bostrensis_n p._n 803._o c._o then_o as_o they_o perish_v at_o the_o day_n of_o pascha_fw-la at_o their_o sacrifice_n so_o shall_v a_o multitude_n of_o you_o on_o that_o very_a day_n see_v josephus_n of_o the_o jewish_a war_n l._n 6._o c._n 11._o and_o l._n 7._o c._n 17._o and_o euseb_n eccl._n hist_o l._n 3._o c._n 5._o in_o the_o temple_n be_v slaughter_v like_o sheep_n and_o that_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n a_o sedition_n raise_v in_o the_o city_n 4._o or_o those_o eighteen_o on_o who_o the_o tower_n in_o siloe_n fall_v and_o slay_v they_o think_v you_o that_o they_o be_v sinner_n above_o all_o man_n that_o dwell_v in_o jerusalem_n 5._o i_o tell_v you_o nay_o but_o except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v paraphrase_n 5._o perish_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a city_n as_o they_o of_o that_o tower_n 6._o he_o speak_v also_o this_o parable_n a_o certain_a man_n have_v a_o figtree_n plant_v in_o his_o vineyard_n and_o he_o come_v and_o seek_v fruit_n thereon_o and_o find_v none_o paraphrase_n 6._o and_o he_o speak_v a_o parable_n to_o they_o of_o which_o this_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n this_o people_n have_v long_o be_v unprofitable_a make_v no_o return_n to_o all_o god_n husbandry_n bestow_v upon_o they_o and_o yet_o god_n have_v give_v they_o space_n to_o repent_v and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o dress_v and_o manure_v they_o and_o if_o this_o do_v not_o work_v upon_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v expect_v but_o destruction_n and_o excision_n the_o parable_n be_v this_o a_o certain_a man_n etc._n etc._n 7._o then_o say_v he_o unto_o the_o dresser_n of_o his_o vineyard_n behold_v these_o three_o year_n i_o come_v seek_v fruit_n on_o this_o figtree_n and_o find_v none_o cut_v it_o down_o why_o cumber_v it_o the_o ground_n 8._o and_o he_o answer_v say_v unto_o he_o lord_n let_v it_o alone_o this_o year_n also_o till_o i_o shall_v dig_v about_o it_o and_o dung_n it_o 9_o and_o if_o it_o bear_v fruit_n well_o and_o if_o not_o then_o after_o that_o thou_o shall_v cut_v it_o down_o paraphrase_n 9_o and_o perhaps_o it_o will_v bear_v fruit_n or_o make_v this_o experiment_n whether_o it_o will_v bear_v fruit_n or_o no_o 10._o and_o he_o be_v teach_v in_o one_o of_o the_o synagogue_n on_o the_o sabbath_n 11._o and_o behold_v there_o be_v a_o woman_n which_o have_v a_o spirit_n of_o infirmity_n eighteen_o year_n and_o be_v bow_v together_o and_o can_v in_o no_o wise_a lift_n up_o herself_o paraphrase_n 11._o sore_a disease_n inflict_v on_o on_o she_o by_o the_o devil_n v_o 16._o for_o the_o space_n of_o eighteen_o year_n and_o she_o do_v so_o extreme_o stoop_v that_o she_o can_v hardly_o see_v the_o heaven_n 12._o and_o when_o jesus_n see_v she_o he_o call_v she_o unto_o he_o and_o say_v unto_o she_o woman_n thou_o be_v loose_v from_o thy_o infirmity_n paraphrase_n 12._o thy_o disease_n 13._o and_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o she_o and_o immediate_o she_o be_v make_v straight_o and_o glorify_v god_n 14._o and_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n answer_v with_o indignation_n because_o that_o jesus_n have_v heal_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o say_v unto_o the_o people_n there_o be_v six_o day_n in_o which_o man_n ought_v to_o work_v in_o they_o therefore_o come_v and_o be_v heal_v and_o not_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n paraphrase_n 14._o the_o head_n of_o the_o consistory_n be_v angry_a that_o jesus_n do_v cure_n on_o the_o sabbath_n give_v command_v to_o the_o multitude_n say_v there_o be_v six_o day_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o which_o man_n ought_v to_o do_v all_o the_o work_n which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o week_n 15._o the_o lord_n then_o answer_v he_o and_o say_v thou_o hypocrite_n do_v not_o each_o one_o of_o you_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n loose_v his_o ox_n or_o his_o ass_n from_o the_o c._n stall_n and_o lead_v he_o away_o to_o water_v 16._o and_o ought_v not_o this_o woman_n be_v a_o daughter_n of_o abraham_n who_o satan_n have_v bind_v lo_o these_o eighteen_o year_n be_v loose_v from_o this_o bond_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n paraphrase_n 16._o on_o who_o satan_n have_v inflict_v a_o sore_a disease_n of_o 18_o year_n duration_n be_v cure_v of_o this_o disease_n 17._o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n all_o his_o adversary_n be_v ashamed_a and_o all_o the_o people_n rejoice_v for_o all_o the_o glorious_a thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o he_o 18._o then_o say_v he_o unto_o what_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n like_a and_o whereunto_o shall_v i_o resemble_v it_o 19_o it_o be_v like_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n which_o a_o man_n take_v and_o cast_v into_o his_o garden_n and_o be_v grow_v and_o wax_v note_v a_o a_o great_a tree_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n lodge_v in_o the_o branch_n of_o it_o paraphrase_n 19_o mat._n 13._o 31._o 20._o and_o again_o he_o say_v whereunto_o shall_v i_o liken_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 21._o it_o be_v like_a leaven_n which_o a_o woman_n take_v and_o hide_v in_o three_o measure_n of_o meal_n till_o the_o whole_a be_v leaven_v paraphrase_n 21._o mat._n 13._o 33._o 22._o and_o he_o go_v through_o the_o city_n and_o village_n teach_v and_o journey_v towards_o jerusalem_n 23._o then_o say_v
unsavoury_a salt_n if_o to_o this_o it_o be_v object_v that_o by_o this_o way_n of_o interpretation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d salt_n in_o the_o second_o place_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o salt_n body_n or_o that_o which_o have_v salt_n in_o it_o whereas_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o signify_v salt_n itself_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v obvious_a by_o reflect_v on_o the_o parable_n of_o salt_n mat._n 5._o to_o which_o be_v immediate_o subjoin_v you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o that_o be_v add_v not_o do_v you_o shine_v but_o let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v etc._n etc._n where_o as_o christian_n be_v first_o name_v light_v itself_o and_o then_o luminous_a body_n so_o both_o there_o and_o here_o christian_n be_v first_o resemble_v to_o salt_n itself_o and_o then_o immediate_o to_o salt_n body_n or_o thing_n which_o have_v salt_n in_o they_o and_o so_o still_o this_o be_v a_o agreeable_a interpretation_n chap._n xv._n 1._o than_o draw_v near_o unto_o he_o all_o the_o publican_n and_o sinner_n for_o to_o hear_v he_o paraphrase_n 1._o heathen_n in_o great_a multitude_n 2._o and_o the_o pharisee_n and_o scribe_n murmur_v say_v this_o man_n 〈◊〉_d receive_v sinner_n and_o eat_v with_o they_o 3._o and_o he_o speak_v this_o parable_n unto_o they_o say_v 4._o what_o man_n of_o you_o have_v a_o hundred_o sheep_n 12._o if_o he_o lose_v one_o of_o they_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o ninety_o and_o nine_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o go_v after_o that_o which_o be_v lose_v until_o he_o find_v it_o 5._o and_o when_o he_o have_v find_v it_o he_o lay_v it_o on_o his_o shoulder_n rejoice_v paraphrase_n 5._o he_o bring_v it_o home_o with_o great_a care_n and_o some_o pain_n to_o he_o yet_o 6._o and_o when_o he_o come_v home_o he_o call_v together_o his_o friend_n and_o neighbour_n say_v unto_o they_o rejoice_v with_o i_o for_o i_o have_v find_v my_o sheep_n which_o be_v lose_v 7._o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o likewise_o joy_n shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n over_o one_o sinner_n that_o repent_v more_o than_o over_o ninety_o and_o nine_o just_a person_n which_o need_v no_o note_n a_o repentance_n paraphrase_n 7._o god_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o 〈◊〉_d angel_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o empress_n that_o joy_n at_o the_o return_v and_o repent_v and_o change_n of_o one_o heathen_a or_o sinful_a atheistical_a liver_n more_o than_o at_o the_o daily_a virtuous_a performance_n of_o those_o which_o have_v never_o be_v engage_v in_o a_o vicious_a course_n and_o so_o though_o they_o have_v and_o want_v sorrow_n and_o wish_v it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o their_o frequent_a slip_n and_o fail_n and_o infirmity_n and_o withal_o a_o diligence_n and_o vigilance_n and_o great_a industry_n and_o study_n for_o the_o future_a to_o grow_v in_o piety_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n yet_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o a_o virtuous_a course_n these_o need_v not_o that_o change_n of_o mind_n which_o belong_v to_o other_o and_o be_v proper_o call_v by_o that_o title_n of_o repentance_n 8._o either_o what_o woman_n have_v ten_o piece_n of_o silver_n if_o she_o lose_v one_o piece_n do_v not_o light_v a_o candle_n and_o sweep_v the_o house_n and_o seek_v diligent_o till_o she_o find_v it_o 9_o and_o when_o she_o have_v find_v it_o she_o call_v her_o friend_n and_o her_o neighbour_n together_o say_v rejoice_v with_o i_o for_o i_o have_v find_v the_o piece_n which_o i_o have_v lose_v 10._o likewise_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o there_o be_v joy_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n over_o one_o sinner_n that_o repent_v paraphrase_n 10._o after_o the_o same_o proportion_n it_o be_v that_o god_n express_v joy_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o angel_n upon_o the_o reduce_n of_o one_o indulgent_a sinner_n to_o good_a life_n 11._o and_o he_o say_v a_o certain_a man_n have_v two_o son_n paraphrase_n 11._o to_o which_o purpose_n he_o make_v use_v of_o this_o other_o parable_n by_o way_n of_o story_n 12._o and_o the_o young_a of_o they_o say_v to_o his_o father_n father_n give_v i_o the_o portion_n of_o good_n that_o fall_v to_o i_o and_o he_o divide_v unto_o they_o his_o 〈◊〉_d live_n 13._o and_o not_o many_o day_n after_o the_o young_a son_n gather_v all_o together_o and_o take_v his_o journey_n into_o a_o far_a country_n and_o there_o 〈◊〉_d waste_v his_o substance_n with_o riotous_a live_n 14._o and_o when_o he_o have_v spend_v all_o there_o 〈◊〉_d arise_v a_o mighty_a famine_n in_o that_o land_n and_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o want_n 15._o and_o he_o go_v and_o 〈◊〉_d join_v himself_o to_o a_o citizen_n of_o that_o country_n and_o he_o send_v he_o into_o the_o field_n to_o feed_v swine_n paraphrase_n 15._o and_o be_v in_o that_o distress_n he_o pin_v himself_o upon_o one_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o region_n be_v content_a to_o be_v entertain_v by_o he_o upon_o any_o condition_n never_o so_o hard_a and_o he_o hire_v he_o and_o set_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o swine_n in_o the_o field_n allow_v he_o little_a food_n but_o what_o be_v allow_v the_o swine_n 16._o and_o he_o will_v fain_o have_v fill_v his_o belly_n with_o the_o tree_n note_n b_o husk_n that_o the_o swine_n do_v eat_v and_o no_o man_n give_v unto_o he_o paraphrase_n 16._o and_o he_o will_v have_v be_v glad_a to_o have_v fill_v his_o belly_n with_o egyptian_a fig_n a_o course_n unwholesome_a fruit_n that_o swine_n feed_v on_o among_o they_o and_o he_o can_v not_o get_v enough_o of_o they_o 17._o and_o a._n when_o he_o come_v to_o himself_o he_o say_v how_o many_o hire_a servant_n of_o my_o father_n have_v bread_n enough_o and_o to_o spare_v and_o i_o perish_v with_o hunger_n paraphrase_n 17._o and_o meditate_v with_o himself_o he_o remember_v the_o plenty_n that_o his_o father_n servant_n have_v or_o be_v reduce_v to_o some_o sense_n and_o consideration_n by_o this_o distress_n he_o thus_o say_v within_o himself_o the_o mean_a of_o a_o multitude_n of_o my_o father_n servant_n feed_v very_o plentiful_o and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o the_o mean_a food_n 18._o i_o will_v arise_v and_o go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o will_v say_v unto_o he_o father_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o before_o thou_o 19_o and_o be_o no_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v thy_o son_n make_v i_o as_o one_o of_o thy_o hire_a servant_n 20._o and_o he_o arise_v and_o come_v to_o his_o father_n but_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o great_a way_n off_o his_o father_n see_v he_o and_o have_v compassion_n and_o run_v and_o fall_v on_o his_o neck_n and_o kiss_v he_o 21._o and_o the_o son_n say_v unto_o he_o father_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o in_o thy_o sight_n and_o be_o no_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v thy_o son_n 22._o but_o the_o father_n say_v to_o his_o servant_n bring_v forth_o the_o best_a robe_n and_o put_v it_o on_o he_o and_o put_v a_o ring_n on_o his_o hand_n and_o shoe_n on_o his_o foot_n paraphrase_n 22._o use_v he_o with_o all_o the_o expression_n of_o respect_n &_o kindness_n which_o be_v possible_a bring_v the_o best_a garment_n that_o be_v in_o the_o wardrobe_n 23._o and_o bring_v hither_o the_o fat_a calf_n and_o kill_v it_o and_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o be_v merry_a 24._o for_o this_o my_o son_n be_v note_v c_o dead_z and_o be_v alive_a again_o he_o be_v lose_v and_o be_v find_v and_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v merry_a paraphrase_n 24._o for_o this_o return_n of_o a_o prodigal_a so_o desperate_o lose_v i_o look_v upon_o as_o if_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a because_o 25._o now_o his_o elder_a son_n be_v in_o the_o field_n and_o as_o he_o come_v and_o draw_v nigh_o to_o the_o house_n he_o hear_v music_n and_o dance_n paraphrase_n 25._o now_o that_o son_n of_o his_o that_o have_v always_o continue_v with_o he_o and_o follow_v his_o business_n and_o observe_v he_o diligent_o parallel_n to_o who_o be_v the_o just_a person_n that_o never_o run_v the_o prodigal_n course_n and_o so_o need_v no_o repentance_n 26._o and_o he_o call_v one_o of_o the_o servant_n and_o ask_v what_o these_o thing_n mean_v 27._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o thy_o brother_n be_v come_v and_o thy_o father_n have_v kill_v the_o fat_a calf_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v he_o safe_a and_o sound_a paraphrase_n 27._o to_o celebrate_v his_o safe_a return_n with_o a_o time_n of_o feast_v 28._o and_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o will_v not_o go_v in_o therefore_o come_v his_o father_n out_o and_o entreat_v he_o 29._o and_o he_o answer_v say_v to_o his_o father_n loe_o these_o many_o year_n i_o serve_v thou_o neither_o transgress_v i_o at_o any_o time_n thy_o commandment_n and_o yet_o thou_o never_o give_v i_o a_o kid_n that_o
great_a note_n f_o drop_n of_o blood_n fall_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n paraphrase_n 44._o after_o that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o commotion_n of_o mind_n which_o signify_v a_o apprehension_n of_o extreme_a danger_n without_o any_o tremble_n at_o it_o or_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v or_o escape_v it_o he_o pray_v more_o vehement_o and_o fall_v prostrate_a upon_o his_o face_n mar._n 14._o 35._o say_v the_o same_o word_n and_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o he_o sweat_v as_o man_n in_o agony_n be_v wont_n great_a glutinous_a drop_n like_o those_o of_o blood_n when_o it_o drop_v on_o the_o ground_n 45._o and_o when_o he_o rise_v up_o from_o prayer_n and_o be_v come_v to_o his_o disciple_n he_o find_v they_o sleep_v for_o sorrow_n paraphrase_n 45._o three_o disciple_n peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n mat._n 26._o 37._o he_o find_v they_o fast_o asleep_a this_o sleep_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o that_o great_a heaviness_n and_o dispiritednesse_n which_o their_o sorrow_n have_v produce_v 46._o and_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o sleep_v you_o rise_v and_o pray_v lest_o you_o enter_v into_o temptation_n 47._o and_o while_o he_o yet_o speak_v behold_v a_o multitude_n and_o he_o that_o be_v call_v judas_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o go_v before_o they_o and_o draw_v near_o unto_o jesus_n to_o kiss_v he_o 48._o but_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o judas_z 〈◊〉_d betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n paraphrase_n 48._o be_v a_o kiss_n the_o token_n by_o which_o thou_o have_v promise_v to_o deliver_v i_o up_o to_o they_o mar._n 14._o 44._o 49._o when_o they_o which_o be_v about_o he_o see_v what_o will_v follow_v they_o say_v unto_o he_o lord_n shall_v we_o smite_v with_o the_o sword_n paraphrase_n 49._o when_o the_o disciple_n see_v what_o be_v towards_o they_o offer_v to_o have_v fight_v for_o his_o rescue_n 50._o and_o one_o of_o they_o smite_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o cut_v off_o his_o right_a ear_n priest_n 51._o and_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v suffer_v you_o thus_o far_o and_o he_o touch_v his_o ear_n and_o heal_v he_o paraphrase_n 51._o and_o jesus_n reprove_v peter_n for_o so_o so_o do_v mat._n 26._o 52._o speak_v to_o those_o that_o come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o to_o let_v he_o alone_o but_o so_o long_o as_o to_o restore_v the_o man_n his_o ear_n and_o upon_o a_o touch_n he_o be_v cure_v 52._o then_o jesus_n say_v unto_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o note_n g_o captain_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v come_v to_o he_o be_v you_o come_v out_o as_o against_o a_o thief_n with_o sword_n and_o staff_n 53._o when_o i_o be_v daily_o with_o you_o in_o the_o temple_n you_o stretch_v forth_o no_o hand_n against_o i_o but_o this_o be_v your_o hour_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n paraphrase_n 53._o this_o be_v the_o time_n wherein_o the_o devil_n and_o you_o be_v permit_v to_o work_v your_o will_n upon_o i_o 54._o then_o take_v they_o he_o and_o lead_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o high_a priest_n house_n and_o peter_n follow_v afar_o off_o paraphrase_n 54._o house_n of_o caiaphas_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o that_o year_n where_o the_o sanhedrim_n be_v assemble_v mat._n 26._o 57_o 55._o and_o when_o they_o have_v kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o hall_n and_o be_v set_v down_o together_o peter_n sit_v down_o among_o they_o 56._o but_o a_o certain_a maid_n behold_v he_o as_o he_o sit_v by_o the_o fire_n and_o earnest_o look_v upon_o he_o and_o say_v this_o man_n be_v also_o with_o he_o 57_o and_o he_o deny_v say_v woman_n i_o know_v he_o not_o 58._o and_o after_o a_o little_a while_n another_o see_v he_o and_o say_v thou_o be_v 〈◊〉_d also_o of_o they_o and_o peter_n say_v man_n i_o be_o not_o paraphrase_n 58._o another_o maiden_n mat._n 26._o 71._o mar._n 14._o 69._o see_v note_n on_o the_o title_n of_o s._n matthew_n gospel_n see_v he_o say_v thou_o be_v even_o one_o of_o they_o but_o peter_n deny_v and_o say_v woman_n i_o be_o not_o 59_o and_o about_o the_o space_n of_o one_o hour_n after_o another_o confident_o affirm_v say_v of_o a_o truth_n this_o fellow_n also_o be_v with_o he_o for_o he_o be_v a_o galilean_a paraphrase_n 59_o and_o some_o other_o that_o stand_v by_o mat._n 26._o 73._o mar._n 14._o 17._o affirm_v confident_o that_o he_o be_v certain_o one_o of_o his_o company_n for_o say_v they_o his_o speech_n discover_v he_o to_o be_v a_o galilean_a mat._n 26._o 73._o etc._n etc._n 60._o and_o peter_n say_v man_n i_o know_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v and_o immediate_o while_o he_o yet_o speak_v the_o cock_n crew_n paraphrase_n 60._o but_o he_o say_v with_o addition_n of_o oath_n and_o imprecation_n mat._n 26._o 74._o i_o be_o not_o what_o thou_o affirm_v i_o to_o be_v 61._o and_o the_o lord_n turn_v and_o look_v upon_o peter_n and_o peter_n remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o he_o before_o the_o cock_n crow_v thou_o shall_v deny_v i_o thrice_o 62._o and_o peter_n go_v out_o and_o weep_v bitter_o 63._o and_o the_o man_n that_o hold_v jesus_n mock_v he_o and_o smite_v he_o paraphrase_n 63._o while_n peter_n be_v in_o the_o hall_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n mat._n 26._o 58._o and_o 69._o before_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o precedent_a story_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o soldier_n that_o be_v set_v to_o guard_n jesus_n mat._n 26._o 67._o spit_n in_o his_o face_n 64._o and_o when_o they_o have_v note_v h_z blindfolded_z he_o they_o strike_v he_o on_o the_o face_n and_o ask_v he_o say_v prophecy_n who_o be_v it_o that_o smite_v thou_o paraphrase_n 64._o tell_v we_o if_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o know_v and_o declare_v secret_n 65._o and_o many_o other_o thing_n blasphemous_o speak_v they_o against_o he_o 66._o and_o assoon_o as_o it_o be_v day_n the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n come_v together_o and_o lead_v he_o into_o their_o council_n say_v paraphrase_n 66._o the_o sanhedrim_n meet_v and_o call_v for_o he_o to_o be_v bring_v 67._o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n tell_v we_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o if_o i_o tell_v you_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v 68_o and_o if_o i_o also_o ask_v you_o you_o will_v not_o answer_v i_o nor_o let_v i_o go_v paraphrase_n 68_o and_o if_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v to_o you_o by_o never_o so_o convince_a argument_n that_o i_o be_o the_o messiah_n you_o will_v neither_o satisfy_v nor_o answer_v my_o proof_n nor_o yet_o yield_v to_o the_o force_n of_o they_o and_o release_v i_o out_o of_o your_o hand_n 69._o hereafter_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 69._o within_o a_o while_n shall_v i_o the_o messiah_n be_v exalt_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o my_o father_n and_o then_o shall_v you_o see_v i_o execute_v judgement_n and_o vengeance_n upon_o you_o mat._n 26._o 64._o 70._o then_o say_v they_o all_o be_v thou_o then_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o paraphrase_n 70._o from_o hence_o they_o conclude_v that_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o be_v so_o or_o no_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v 71._o and_o they_o say_v what_o need_v we_o any_o far_a witness_n for_o we_o ourselves_o have_v hear_v of_o his_o own_o mouth_n paraphrase_n 71._o this_o they_o conclude_v to_o be_v a_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o so_o that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n in_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n annotation_n on_o chap._n xxii_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 6._o promise_v what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v here_o will_v be_v more_o easy_o determine_v when_o it_o be_v resolve_v that_o as_o among_o grammarian_n so_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o place_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o clear_o denote_v one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n either_o confession_n of_o sin_n or_o give_v of_o thanks_o both_o be_v the_o importance_n of_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o hiphil_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o say_v phavorinus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n or_o enumeration_n of_o benefit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o guilty_a man_n acknowledgement_n of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v amiss_o which_o be_v vulgar_o know_v by_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o signify_v to_o give_v thanks_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o confess_v of_o fault_n it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v mat._n 3._o 6._o mar._n 1._o 5._o act_n 19_o 18._o james_n 5._o
fright_n think_v it_o have_v be_v a_o vision_n of_o some_o spirit_n without_o any_o real_a body_n join_v unto_o it_o 38._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o be_v you_o trouble_v and_o why_o do_v thought_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n paraphrase_n 38._o you_o doubt_v or_o suspect_v i_o to_o be_v a_o spirit_n without_o a_o body_n 39_o behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n that_o it_n be_v i_o myself_o handle_v i_o and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v paraphrase_n 39_o it_o be_v very_o i_o body_n and_o soul_n together_o 40._o and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o show_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o his_o foot_n paraphrase_n 40._o give_v they_o leave_v to_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n 41._o and_o while_o they_o yet_o believe_v not_o for_o joy_n and_o wonder_v he_o say_v unto_o they_o have_v you_o here_o any_o meat_n paraphrase_n 41._o and_o the_o great_a and_o more_o transport_v their_o joy_n be_v the_o less_o confident_a be_v they_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o certain_a belief_n of_o it_o he_o call_v for_o some_o meat_n 42._o and_o they_o give_v he_o a_o piece_n of_o a_o broil_a fish_n and_o of_o a_o honey_n comb_n 43._o and_o he_o take_v it_o and_o do_v eat_v before_o they_o 44._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o while_o i_o be_v yet_o with_o you_o that_o all_o thing_n must_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n concern_v i_o paraphrase_n 44._o what_o you_o now_o see_v i_o do_v foretell_v when_o i_o be_v among_o you_o before_o my_o crucifixion_n &_o be_v agreeable_a to_o all_o the_o several_a image_n and_o prediction_n of_o i_o in_o all_o the_o book_n of_o god_n which_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v fulfil_v 45._o then_o open_v he_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n paraphrase_n 45._o then_o by_o the_o special_a operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n he_o give_v they_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o those_o thing_n especial_o which_o concern_v the_o messiah_n 46._o and_o say_v unto_o they_o thus_o it_o be_v write_v and_o thus_o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n 47._o and_o that_o repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n among_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n 48._o and_o you_o be_v witness_n of_o these_o thing_n paraphrase_n 46_o 47_o 48._o the_o sum_n of_o which_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v this_o that_o the_o messiah_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o rise_v again_o and_o that_o his_o apostle_n the_o witness_n thereof_o shall_v after_o his_o resurrection_n preach_v repentance_n and_o upon_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o jerusalem_n and_o through_o all_o judea_n first_o and_o then_o to_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n 49._o and_o behold_v i_o send_v the_o promise_n of_o my_o father_n upon_o you_o but_o tarry_v you_o in_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n until_o you_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o on_o high_a paraphrase_n 49._o to_o which_o end_n he_o promise_v immediate_o to_o send_v they_o the_o holy_a spirit_n promise_v by_o god_n the_o father_n to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o so_o to_o install_v they_o to_o succeed_v he_o in_o his_o office_n till_o which_o time_n he_o command_v they_o all_o to_o stay_v and_o not_o to_o stiree_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n 50._o and_o he_o lead_v they_o out_o as_o far_o as_o to_o bethany_n and_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_v they_o 51._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v while_o he_o bless_v they_o he_o be_v part_v from_o they_o and_o carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 51._o act._n 1._o 9_o 52._o and_o they_o worship_v he_o and_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n with_o great_a joy_n 53._o and_o they_o be_v continual_o in_o the_o temple_n praise_v and_o bless_v god_n amen_o paraphrase_n 53._o constant_o at_o the_o time_n of_o devotion_n see_v note_n on_o act._n 1._o d._n in_o some_o of_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o temple_n annotation_n on_o chap._n xxiv_o v._o 18._o cleophas_n this_o cleophas_n say_v 〈◊〉_d hegesippus_n be_v the_o brother_n of_o joseph_n marys_n husband_n and_o so_o the_o repute_a uncle_n of_o christ_n who_o son_n simeon_n say_v eusebius_n there_o be_v by_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n then_o live_v make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o james_n as_o be_v near_o of_o kin_n to_o our_o saviour_n the_o gospel_n according_a to_o s._n john_n chap._n i._n 1._o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n 2._o the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n 3_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v paraphrase_n 1_o 2._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n before_o all_o time_n before_o any_o thing_n be_v create_v the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v a_o subsistence_n and_o that_o subsistence_n with_o his_o father_n of_o who_o he_o be_v beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n and_o be_v himself_o eternal_a god_n and_o be_v by_o his_o father_n in_o his_o eternal_a purpose_n design_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n who_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n know_v by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v note_n on_o luk._n 1._o b._n he_o be_v here_o fit_o express_v by_o that_o title_n the_o word_n paraphrase_n 3._o this_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n i_o mean_v by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v at_o first_o create_v 4._o in_o he_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n paraphrase_n 4._o he_o bring_v with_o he_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v worthy_o call_v life_n c._n 6._o 63._o and_o 12._o 50._o because_o it_o lead_v to_o holy_a life_n here_o such_o as_o god_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o accept_v of_o through_o christ_n and_o to_o reward_v eternal_o whereas_o the_o law_n be_v the_o bring_n in_o of_o death_n see_v c._n 10._o 10._o and_o this_o vivificall_a doctrine_n be_v the_o mean_n design_v by_o god_n to_o lead_v and_o enlighten_v all_o mankind_n especial_o the_o jew_n to_o tell_v they_o their_o duty_n and_o therefore_o be_v call_v the_o light_n of_o life_n c._n 8._o 12._o 5._o and_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n 〈◊〉_d comprehend_v it_o not_o paraphrase_n 5._o though_o through_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n heart_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o jew_n themselves_o have_v no_o fruit_n or_o benefit_n by_o it_o 6._o there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n paraphrase_n 6._o there_o come_v a_o man_n with_o commission_n from_o god_n to_o preach_v repentance_n to_o the_o lewes_z 7._o the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o 〈◊〉_d witness_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v paraphrase_n 7._o he_o be_v by_o god_n send_v on_o purpose_n to_o testify_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n the_o true_a teacher_n send_v from_o heaven_n that_o so_o by_o that_o testimony_n of_o his_o all_o man_n may_v believe_v on_o he_o 8._o he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n but_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o that_o light_n paraphrase_n 8._o this_o john_n be_v not_o the_o messiah_n but_o the_o whole_a end_n of_o his_o mission_n into_o the_o world_n be_v to_o 9_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n man_n which_o light_v every_o man_n note_v a_o that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n paraphrase_n 9_o that_o word_n which_o now_o i_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v christ_n be_v that_o true_a light_n eminent_o that_o which_o light_n be_v define_v to_o be_v able_a to_o refresh_v and_o warm_v the_o cold_a and_o to_o enlighten_v the_o dark_a heart_n and_o he_o as_o the_o sun_n after_o a_o long_a darkness_n of_o night_n be_v now_o rise_v in_o our_o hemisphere_n see_v v._n 10._o and_o c_o 9_o 5._o and_o 12._o 46._o and_o be_v manifest_v to_o the_o world_n shine_v forth_o to_o every_o man_n therein_o 10._o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o paraphrase_n 10._o this_o word_n be_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o the_o world_n in_o so_o eminent_a a_o manner_n that_o indeed_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o but_o the_o generality_n of_o man_n do_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o he_o 11._o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o paraphrase_n 11._o and_o therefore_o
greek_a copy_n there_o be_v which_o have_v this_o story_n in_o this_o place_n and_o so_o the_o arabic_a and_o most_o of_o the_o latin_a so_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d attribute_v but_o it_o be_v think_v not_o true_o to_o athanasius_n in_o this_o difficulty_n the_o resolution_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o learned_a h._n grotius_n seem_v to_o be_v most_o reasonable_a that_o this_o part_n of_o story_n be_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o they_o that_o hear_v they_o that_o papias_n and_o other_o have_v it_o as_o be_v testify_v by_o euseb_n l._n 3._o c._n 39_o from_o the_o scholar_n and_o hearer_n of_o s._n john_n that_o though_o other_o of_o papias_n pretend_a tradition_n be_v not_o yet_o this_o be_v approve_v and_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o sufficient_o testify_v to_o have_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o as_o s._n jerom._n affirm_v put_v in_o into_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o nazarene_o and_o so_o in_o late_a time_n after_o the_o syriack_n but_o before_o the_o arabic_a and_o ancient_a latin_a translation_n put_v into_o this_o place_n of_o this_o gospel_n and_o according_o read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n chap._n viii_o 1._o jesus_n go_v unto_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n 2._o and_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v they_o 3._o and_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisees_n bring_v unto_o he_o a_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n and_o when_o they_o have_v set_v she_o in_o the_o midst_n paraphrase_n 3._o deprehend_v in_o the_o act_n of_o adultery_n and_o bring_v she_o forth_o as_o to_o judgement_n and_o 4._o they_o say_v unto_o he_o master_n this_o woman_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n in_o the_o very_a act_n 5._o now_o moses_n in_o 〈◊〉_d the_o law_n command_v that_o note_v a_o such_o shall_v be_v stone_v but_o what_o say_v thou_o paraphrase_n 5._o those_o that_o be_v thus_o take_v shall_v be_v subject_a to_o any_o the_o severe_a punishment_n such_o as_o ston_a be_v 6._o this_o they_o say_v tempt_v he_o that_o they_o may_v have_v to_o accuse_v he_o but_o jesus_n stoop_v down_o and_o with_o his_o finger_n write_v on_o the_o ground_n this_o as_o though_o he_o hear_v they_o not_o paraphrase_n 6._o but_o jesus_n give_v they_o no_o answer_n but_o as_o if_o he_o heed_v not_o or_o understand_v not_o their_o question_n stoop_v down_o etc._n etc._n 7._o so_o when_o they_o continue_v ask_v he_o lift_v up_o himself_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o he_o that_o be_v without_o sin_n among_o you_o let_v he_o first_o cast_v a_o stone_n at_o she_o paraphrase_n 7._o supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o prosecutor_n and_o be_v the_o first_o that_o cast_v stone_n at_o she_o deut_n 17._o 7._o 8._o and_o again_o he_o stoop_v down_o and_o write_v on_o the_o ground_n 9_o and_o they_o which_o hear_v it_o being_n convict_v by_o their_o own_o conscience_n go_v out_o one_o by_o one_o begin_v at_o the_o elder_a even_n unto_o the_o last_o and_o jesus_n be_v leave_v alone_o and_o the_o woman_n stand_v in_o the_o midst_n paraphrase_n 9_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o convince_v in_o conscience_n that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o as_o great_a commission_n as_o this_o go_v out_o one_o after_o another_o none_o remain_v but_o jesus_n and_o the_o woman_n she_o stand_v before_o he_o in_o the_o posture_n of_o a_o accuse_a person_n before_o a_o judge_n 10._o when_o jesus_n have_v lift_v up_o himself_o and_o see_v none_o but_o the_o woman_n he_o say_v unto_o she_o where_o be_v those_o thy_o accuser_n have_v no_o man_n condemn_a thou_o paraphrase_n 10._o adjudge_v thou_o worthy_a of_o death_n 11._o she_o say_v no_o man_n lord_n and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o neither_o do_v i_o condemn_v thou_o go_v and_o sin_n no_o more_o paraphrase_n 11._o neither_o do_v i_o adjudge_v thou_o to_o death_n but_o rather_o call_v thou_o to_o repentance_n and_o reformation_n 12._o then_o speak_v jesus_n again_o unto_o they_o say_v i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n he_o that_o follow_v i_o shall_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n paraphrase_n 12._o then_o jesus_n soon_o after_o the_o deliver_v those_o word_n c._n 7._o 38._o and_o in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n say_v to_o they_o all_o public_o i_o be_o come_v to_o enlighten_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n he_o that_o will_v leave_v his_o former_a course_n and_o follow_v i_o i_o will_v give_v he_o that_o illumination_n which_o shall_v bring_v he_o to_o piety_n and_o bliss_n 13._o the_o pharisee_n therefore_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o bear_v record_v of_o thyself_o thy_o record_n be_v not_o true_a paraphrase_n 13._o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v heed_v or_o credit_v be_v no_o valid_a testimony_n or_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o we_o 14._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o though_o i_o bear_v record_n of_o myself_o yet_o my_o record_n be_v true_a for_o i_o know_v whence_o i_o come_v and_o whither_o i_o go_v but_o you_o can_v tell_v whence_o i_o come_v and_o whither_o i_o go_v paraphrase_n 14._o jesus_n answer_v my_o testify_v of_o myself_o do_v not_o invalidate_v my_o testimony_n my_o come_n from_o heaven_n on_o a_o embassy_n to_o you_o on_o another_o not_o my_o own_o errand_n and_o that_o testify_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o john_n baptist_n and_o by_o john_n baptist_n to_o you_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v but_o however_o to_o myself_o undoubted_o know_v give_v a_o validity_n to_o my_o testimony_n and_o join_v god_n the_o father_n himself_o in_o the_o testimony_n with_o i_o and_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v testify_v that_o i_o be_o send_v by_o god_n so_o my_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n which_o will_v sufficient_o prove_v my_o mission_n be_v know_v to_o i_o before_o hand_n though_o not_o to_o you_o and_o be_v discoverable_a by_o the_o event_n to_o you_o also_o especial_o when_o so_o many_o eye-witness_n shall_v have_v testify_v it_o to_o you_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o my_o testimony_n of_o myself_o though_o a_o single_a one_o will_v be_v authentic_a and_o valid_a though_o perhaps_o as_o the_o one_o be_v not_o already_o so_o the_o other_o also_o will_v not_o be_v heed_v by_o you_o 15._o you_o judge_v after_o the_o flesh_n i_o judge_v no_o man_n paraphrase_n 15._o you_o that_o know_v not_o my_o divine_a original_n v_o 14._o judge_n of_o i_o only_o according_a to_o my_o humane_a extraction_n and_o in_o proportion_n to_o that_o pass_v sentence_n of_o i_o i_o be_o unwilling_a to_o say_v or_o judge_v the_o worst_a of_o you_o otherwise_o i_o can_v say_v worse_o of_o you_o 16._o and_o yet_o if_o i_o judge_v my_o judgement_n be_v true_a for_o i_o be_o not_o alone_a but_o i_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o paraphrase_n 16._o and_o if_o i_o shall_v do_v so_o my_o judgement_n be_v valid_a according_a to_o law_n because_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n also_o and_o testimony_n of_o my_o father_n who_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o miracle_n and_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n require_v all_o to_o believe_v on_o i_o must_v needs_o judge_v they_o as_o pertinacious_a unbeliever_n who_o stand_v out_o against_o all_o this_o 17._o it_o be_v also_o write_v in_o your_o law_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o man_n be_v true_a paraphrase_n 17._o and_o it_o be_v know_v in_o all_o law_n particular_o in_o that_o of_o you_o deut._n 17._o 6._o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o man_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o valid_a in_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o 18._o i_o 〈◊〉_d be_o one_o that_o bear_v witness_n of_o myself_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o paraphrase_n 18._o and_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v those_o two_o for_o as_o i_o now_o witness_v of_o myself_o which_o be_v not_o against_o law_n or_o reason_n for_o i_o to_o do_v for_o it_o be_v not_o my_o own_o cause_n but_o concern_v other_o to_o who_o i_o be_o send_v and_o not_o myself_o but_o only_o as_o a_o witness_n and_o declarer_fw-la so_o my_o father_n also_o by_o voice_n from_o heaven_n descent_n of_o his_o spirit_n miracle_n prophecy_n testify_v my_o commission_n from_o he_o 19_o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o where_o be_v thy_o father_n jesus_n answer_v you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o will_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o paraphrase_n 19_o they_o say_v therefore_o unto_o he_o be_v not_o joseph_n your_o father_n have_v you_o any_o other_o jesus_n reply_v you_o will_v not_o receive_v any_o knowledge_n concern_v i_o or_o my_o father_n your_o acknowledge_v of_o i_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o bring_v you_o
therefore_o i_o testify_v this_o and_o every_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v convince_v of_o it_o and_o according_o receive_v and_o obey_v i_o 38._o pilate_n say_v unto_o he_o what_o be_v truth_n and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o he_o go_v out_o again_o unto_o the_o jew_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o find_v in_o he_o no_o fault_n at_o all_o paraphrase_n 38._o what_o mean_v thou_o by_o the_o truth_n 39_o but_o you_o have_v a_o custom_n that_o i_o shall_v release_v unto_o you_o one_o at_o the_o passeover_n will_v you_o therefore_o that_o i_o release_v unto_o you_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n paraphrase_n 39_o set_v one_o prisoner_n at_o liberty_n at_o your_o entreaty_n 40._o then_o cry_v they_o all_o again_o say_v not_o this_o man_n but_o barrabas_n now_o barrabas_n be_v a_o robber_n paraphrase_n 40._o no_o by_o no_o mean_n but_o release_v to_o we_o barrabas_n this_o abbess_n be_v a_o robber_n barrabas_n be_v one_o that_o in_o a_o insurrection_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o murder_n act._n 3._o 14._o and_o be_v a_o robber_n also_o annotation_n on_o chap._n xviii_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 3._o lantern_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v say_v phavorinus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o lamp_n or_o light_n but_o that_o say_v he_o express_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o for_o a_o lantern_n but_o as_o he_o go_v on_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d any_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o light_n on_o it_o which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v there_o contradistinct_a to_o the_o lantern_n be_v a_o candle_n on_o a_o candlestick_n or_o somewhat_o proportionable_a to_o that_o among_o the_o jew_n which_o we_o usual_o express_v by_o the_o word_n light_n that_o be_v candle_n etc._n etc._n set_v out_o for_o use_n and_o service_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 28._o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v defile_v the_o praetor_n hall_n be_v full_a of_o pilate_n roman_a soldier_n now_o these_o be_v gentile_n be_v in_o that_o condition_n of_o which_o maimonides_n say_v 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v for_o such_o as_o have_v a_o perpetual_a issue_n of_o blood_n upon_o they_o whensoever_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v wherein_o the_o question_n of_o cleanness_n or_o uncleanness_n be_v considerable_a as_o here_o in_o the_o eat_n the_o passeover_n of_o which_o no_o unclean_a person_n be_v to_o partake_v so_o that_o by_o presence_n among_o the_o gentile_n this_o legal_a uncleanness_n be_v contract_v as_o much_o as_o by_o any_o thing_n hence_o be_v that_o of_o act._n 10._o 28._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o a_o jew_n to_o be_v join_v to_o or_o converse_v with_o a_o heathen_a so_o act._n 11._o 3._o why_o do_v thou_o go_v in_o to_o those_o that_o be_v uncircumcised_a and_o do_v eat_v with_o they_o and_o justin_n out_o of_o trogus_n speak_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o affirm_v false_o that_o they_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o egypt_n for_o fear_n of_o infect_v the_o egyptian_n with_o some_o disease_n lest_o say_v he_o they_o shall_v be_v avoid_v and_o hate_v by_o all_o other_o nation_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n caverunt_fw-la nè_fw-la cum_fw-la peregrinis_fw-la communicarent_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la causa_fw-la factum_fw-la paulatim_fw-la in_o disciplinam_fw-la religionémque_fw-la convertit_fw-la they_o take_v care_n never_o to_o communicate_v with_o stranger_n which_o be_v first_o do_v on_o this_o cause_n so_o this_o heathen_a have_v resolve_v to_o defame_v they_o by_o degree_n turn_v into_o discipline_n and_o religion_n that_o be_v become_v a_o settle_a law_n among_o they_o so_o apollonius_n molo_n in_o joseph_n l._n 2._o cont_n appion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o may_v not_o converse_v with_o they_o which_o choose_v to_o live_v after_o other_o custom_n of_o life_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 31._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o the_o jewish_a rabbin_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o forty_o year_n before_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n the_o power_n of_o judicature_n in_o capital_a crime_n be_v take_v from_o they_o because_o say_v they_o murderer_n prevail_v and_o dissipate_v capital_a punishment_n from_o israel_n and_o according_o it_o appear_v that_o christ_n here_o be_v crucify_v by_o the_o roman_n the_o jewish_a form_n of_o hang_v be_v by_o ston_a first_o and_o then_o set_v up_o a_o stake_n and_o a_o piece_n of_o wood_n across_o it_o and_o hang_v the_o dead_a person_n up_o his_o hand_n be_v join_v and_o nail_v together_o towards_o the_o west_n and_o then_o take_v he_o down_o and_o bury_v the_o wood_n with_o he_o but_o for_o crucify_a man_n alive_a as_o the_o roman_n do_v christ_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o jew_n who_o if_o they_o have_v have_v the_o execution_n of_o he_o will_v first_o have_v stone_v he_o which_o they_o often_o attempt_v to_o do_v see_v paul_n fagius_n on_o the_o chald._a paraph._n deut._n 21._o 22._o chap._n xix_o 1._o then_o pilate_n therefore_o take_v jesus_n and_o scourge_v he_o paraphrase_n 1._o then_o pilate_n think_v to_o satisfy_v the_o jew_n importunity_n by_o inflict_v this_o light_a punishment_n on_o he_o appoint_v jesus_n to_o be_v scourge_v meaning_n when_o he_o have_v do_v so_o to_o release_v he_o see_v lu._n 23._o 16._o 2._o and_o the_o soldier_n plait_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o put_v it_o on_o his_o head_n and_o they_o put_v on_o he_o a_o purple_a robe_n 3._o and_o say_v haile_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o m._n smite_v he_o with_o their_o hand_n paraphrase_n 3._o and_o salute_v he_o as_o a_o mock-king_n 4._o pilate_n therefore_o go_v forth_o again_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o behold_v i_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o you_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o i_o find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o paraphrase_n 4._o and_o profess_v to_o you_o that_o have_v scourge_v he_o i_o find_v nothing_o capital_a in_o he_o or_o which_o may_v deserve_v far_a punishment_n or_o indeed_o any_o at_o all_o 5._o then_o come_v jesus_n forth_o wear_v the_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o the_o purple_a robe_n and_o pilate_n say_v unto_o they_o behold_v the_o man_n paraphrase_n 5._o see_v he_o that_o you_o accuse_v for_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n these_o be_v all_o the_o ensign_n of_o his_o dignity_n you_o see_v he_o have_v be_v scourge_v and_o reproachful_o use_v this_o may_v suffice_v for_o any_o fact_n by_o he_o commit_v lu._n 23._o 16._o 6._o when_o the_o chief_a priest_n therefore_o and_o officer_n see_v he_o they_o cry_v out_o say_v crucify_v he_o crucify_v he_o pilate_n say_v unto_o they_o take_v you_o he_o and_o crucify_v he_o for_o i_o find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o paraphrase_n 6._o when_o therefore_o those_o of_o the_o sanhedrim_n and_o the_o officer_n that_o attend_v they_o see_v he_o they_o call_v to_o have_v he_o crucify_v but_o pilate_n profess_v he_o can_v find_v nothing_o for_o which_o to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v do_v it_o themselves_o if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o do_v for_o he_o can_v not_o 7._o the_o jew_n answer_v he_o we_o have_v a_o law_n and_o by_o our_o law_n he_o ought_v to_o die_v because_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 7._o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v 8._o when_o pilate_n therefore_o hear_v that_o say_n he_o be_v the_o more_o afraid_a paraphrase_n 8._o afraid_a of_o pass_v any_o sentence_n against_o he_o 9_o and_o go_v again_o into_o the_o judgement_n hall_n and_o say_v unto_o jesus_n whence_o be_v thou_o but_o jesus_n give_v he_o no_o answer_n paraphrase_n 9_o what_o be_v thy_o stock_n or_o extraction_n 10._o then_o say_v pilate_n unto_o he_o speak_v thou_o not_o unto_o i_o know_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o have_v power_n to_o crucify_v thou_o and_o have_v power_n to_o release_v thou_o paraphrase_n 10._o will_v thou_o behave_v thyself_o thus_o obstinate_o towards_o i_o who_o have_v it_o in_o my_o power_n either_o to_o put_v thou_o to_o death_n or_o to_o free_v thou_o from_o it_o 11._o jesus_n answer_v thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o against_o i_o except_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o therefore_o he_o that_o deliver_v i_o unto_o thou_o have_v the_o great_a sin_n paraphrase_n 11._o i_o be_o under_o no_o crime_n at_o all_o in_o which_o thou_o may_v found_v the_o right_n of_o put_v i_o judicial_o to_o death_n and_o have_v the_o whole_a host_n of_o angel_n at_o my_o command_n i_o be_o also_o able_a to_o rescue_v myself_o out_o of_o thy_o hand_n so_o that_o thou_o have_v neither_o right_a nor_o power_n to_o inflict_v any_o punishment_n on_o i_o be_v it_o not_o that_o god_n who_o be_v my_o father_n have_v in_o his_o great_a wisdom_n and_o divine_a counsel_n for_o
and_o the_o scribe_n if_o there_o be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a there_o be_v this_o equal_a division_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 28._o thy_o hand_n and_o thy_o counsel_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o this_o speech_n whatsoever_o thy_o counsel_n have_v determine_v before_o to_o be_v do_v have_v little_a difficulty_n in_o it_o the_o truth_n be_v clear_a that_o god_n decree_v that_o those_o thing_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v do_v although_o he_o decree_v not_o that_o the_o jew_n shall_v do_v they_o but_o only_o permit_v they_o to_o do_v what_o he_o foresee_v they_o will_v do_v if_o they_o be_v thus_o permit_v the_o only_a difficulty_n be_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thy_o hand_n and_o that_o will_v best_o be_v explain_v by_o look_v on_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n levit._n 16._o 8._o where_o aaron_n cast_v lot_n on_o the_o goat_n one_o lot_n on_o which_o be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o lord_n another_o on_o which_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o azazel_n or_o scape-goate_n for_o the_o manner_n be_v thus_o the_o two_o goat_n be_v set_v one_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n other_o at_o his_o left_a and_o two_o lot_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o kalphi_n or_o vessel_n that_o be_v the_o word_n use_v by_o the_o rabbin_n from_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d urna_fw-la or_o pitcher_n of_o which_o say_v lucian_n in_o hermot_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d little_a lot_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o silver_n pitcher_n about_o the_o bigness_n of_o a_o bean_n with_o inscription_n on_o they_o and_o the_o priest_n draw_v out_o one_o in_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o other_o then_o by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v vicarius_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la the_o first_o of_o the_o ordinary_a priest_n that_o minister_v to_o the_o highpriest_n he_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n in_o which_o be_v the_o lot_n for_o the_o lord_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o right_a hand_n he_o put_v it_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o goat_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n if_o the_o left_a on_o that_o at_o the_o leave_v and_o that_o goat_n be_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v present_o slay_v before_o he_o the_o other_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d send_v into_o the_o wilderness_n see_v cod._n joma_n c._n 4._o §_o 1._o and_o certain_o this_o distribution_n of_o the_o lot_n be_v from_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o that_o of_o solomon_n prov._n 16._o 23._o now_o by_o this_o ceremony_n of_o the_o goat_n be_v christ_n passion_n typify_v and_o so_o that_o phrase_n here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thy_o hand_n refer_v to_o that_o elevation_n of_o the_o hand_n wherein_o be_v the_o lot_n for_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o note_v this_o whole_a action_n thus_o to_o have_v be_v dispose_v of_o by_o god_n who_o decree_v that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v and_o that_o just_a as_o the_o goat_n do_v under_o the_o law_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 33._o give_v the_o apostle_n witness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v by_o theophylact_fw-mi observe_v to_o have_v some_o energy_n in_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o signify_v somewhat_o to_o be_v entrust_v with_o they_o as_o a_o depositum_fw-la which_o they_o be_v to_o restore_v and_o so_o speak_v as_o of_o a_o debt_n according_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a due_o read_v reddebant_fw-la testimonium_fw-la they_o render_v testimony_n chap._n v._n 1._o but_o a_o certain_a man_n name_v ananias_n with_o sapphira_n his_o wife_n sell_v a_o possession_n paraphrase_n 1._o and_o one_o of_o those_o that_o come_v in_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n name_v ananias_n and_o sapphira_n his_o wife_n with_o joint_a consent_n devote_v their_o estate_n all_o that_o they_o have_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n make_v sale_n of_o it_o 2._o and_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o the_o price_n his_o wife_n also_o be_v privy_a to_o it_o and_o bring_v a_o certain_a part_n and_o lay_v it_o at_o the_o apostle_n foot_n paraphrase_n 2._o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v so_o consent_v also_o or_o combine_v together_o to_o keep_v some_o part_n of_o the_o money_n for_o which_o it_o be_v sell_v for_o themselves_o and_o according_o they_o do_v and_o come_v with_o the_o other_o part_n only_o and_o present_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n 3._o but_o peter_n say_v ananias_n why_o have_v satan_n note_v a_o fill_v thy_o heart_n ghost_n note_n b_o to_o lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o the_o price_n of_o the_o land_n paraphrase_n 3._o how_o have_v satan_n embolden_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v dare_v thus_o to_o deceive_v and_o rob_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o thou_o have_v clear_o do_v in_o keep_v back_o and_o purloin_v part_n when_o thou_o have_v consecrate_v all_o to_o god_n service_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o sell_v note_n c_o while_o it_o remain_v be_v it_o not_o thy_o own_o and_o when_o it_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o in_o thy_o own_o power_n why_o have_v thou_o conceive_v this_o thing_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o have_v not_o lie_v unto_o man_n but_o unto_o god_n paraphrase_n 4._o before_o it_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o whole_o thou_o no_o other_o man_n have_v right_o to_o any_o part_n of_o it_o so_o the_o syriack_n read_v it_o and_o when_o it_o be_v sell_v do_v not_o thou_o receive_v the_o whole_a sum_n or_o price_n for_o which_o it_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o all_o in_o thy_o hand_n and_o power_n so_o as_o thou_o may_v have_v full_o perform_v thy_o vow_n what_o motive_n have_v thou_o to_o do_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o the_o falsity_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o tell_v we_o that_o thou_o have_v sell_v thy_o possession_n and_o bring_v the_o whole_a price_n of_o it_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n when_o thou_o do_v keep_v a_o part_n of_o it_o for_o thyself_o be_v a_o injury_n not_o only_o to_o the_o church_n nor_o so_o much_o to_o we_o the_o apostle_n as_o to_o god_n himself_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o come_v late_o down_o to_o plant_v this_o church_n and_o have_v such_o a_o peculiar_a relation_n to_o it_o that_o what_o be_v do_v to_o that_o be_v by_o interpretation_n do_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o have_v the_o privity_n of_o the_o vow_n and_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o consecrate_v of_o all_o and_o not_o of_o this_o part_n only_o which_o thou_o have_v bring_v to_o we_o 5._o and_o ananias_n hear_v these_o word_n fall_v down_o and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o great_a fear_n come_v on_o all_o they_o that_o hear_v these_o thing_n paraphrase_n 5._o and_o as_o peter_n speak_v these_o word_n ananias_n fall_v down_o dead_a in_o the_o place_n immediate_o to_o the_o great_a astonishment_n and_o terrify_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v there_o present_a 6._o and_o the_o young_a man_n arise_v wound_v he_o up_o and_o carry_v he_o out_o and_o bury_v he_o paraphrase_n 6._o and_o the_o man_n of_o inferior_a rank_n the_o officer_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o bury_v the_o dead_a see_v note_n on_o phil._n 1._o c._n take_v he_o and_o strip_v and_o swath_v he_o as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v the_o dead_a see_v note_n on_o joh._n 19_o g._n and_o take_v he_o up_o 7._o and_o it_o be_v about_o the_o space_n of_o three_o hour_n after_o when_o his_o wife_n not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v come_v in_o paraphrase_n 7._o and_o about_o three_o hour_n after_o this_o judgement_n fall_v on_o ananias_n sapphira_n 8._o and_o peter_n answer_v unto_o she_o tell_v i_o whether_o you_o sell_v the_o land_n for_o so_o much_o and_o she_o say_v yea_o for_o so_o much_o paraphrase_n 8._o and_o peter_n examine_v and_o ask_v she_o say_v be_v that_o sum_n which_o you_o bring_v the_o full_a sum_n for_o which_o the_o field_n be_v sell_v and_o she_o answer_v it_o be_v 9_o then_o peter_n say_v unto_o she_o how_o be_v it_o that_o you_o have_v agree_v together_o to_o tempt_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n behold_v the_o foot_n of_o they_o which_o have_v bury_v thy_o husband_n be_v at_o the_o door_n and_o shall_v carry_v thou_o out_o paraphrase_n 9_o to_o provoke_v and_o dare_v god_n see_v note_n on_o mat._n 4._o c._n to_o try_v whether_o he_o will_v punish_v your_o fraud_n or_o no._n behold_v that_o thou_o may_v see_v what_o a_o provocation_n this_o have_v be_v to_o god_n the_o
he_o that_o do_v his_o neighbour_n wrong_v thrust_v he_o away_o say_v who_o make_v thou_o a_o ruler_n and_o a_o judge_n over_o we_o 28._o will_v thou_o kill_v i_o as_o thou_o do_v the_o egyptian_a yesterday_o 29._o then_o flee_v moses_n at_o this_o say_n and_o be_v a_o stranger_n in_o the_o land_n of_o madianwhere_o he_o beget_v two_o son_n paraphrase_n 29._o and_o moses_n see_v himself_o thus_o repulse_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n fear_v that_o what_o he_o have_v do_v already_o might_n by_o be_v know_v bring_v hazard_n on_o he_o as_o it_o do_v exod._n 2._o 15._o when_o pharaoh_n hear_v of_o it_o he_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o he_o flee_v from_o thence_o to_o midian_a and_o there_o sojourn_v with_o revel_n exod._n 2._o 18._o or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o jethro_n ch_n 3._o 1._o the_o priest_n or_o prince_n of_o midian_a exod._n 2._o 16._o and_o he_o keep_v his_o sheep_n and_o marry_v his_o daughter_n zipporah_n by_o who_o he_o have_v two_o child_n gershom_n so_o name_v for_o his_o be_v a_o stranger_n or_o sojourner_n there_o and_o eliezer_n from_o god_n help_v he_o or_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o pharaoh_n that_o seek_v his_o life_n exod._n 18._o 2_o 3_o 4._o 30._o and_o when_o forty_o year_n be_v expire_v there_o appear_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o mount_n sinai_n a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n in_o a_o bush_n paraphrase_n 30._o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o second_o part_n of_o three_o of_o his_o life_n i._n e._n of_o a_o second_o 40_o year_n which_o be_v also_o the_o period_n of_o the_o 400_o year_n prefix_v v_o 6._o as_o moses_n be_v feed_v his_o sheep_n about_o horeb_n or_o sinai_n that_o mount_v after_o so_o famous_a for_o god_n deliver_v the_o law_n out_o of_o it_o and_o therefore_o call_v the_o flame_a mountain_n of_o god_n exod._n 3._o 2._o he_o see_v a_o flame_n of_o fire_n in_o a_o bush_n but_o the_o bush_n be_v not_o hurt_v nor_o consume_v by_o it_o which_o be_v the_o appear_v of_o a_o angel_n according_a as_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o angel_n to_o appear_v see_v note_n on_o mat._n 3._o k._n 31._o when_o moses_n see_v it_o he_o wonder_v at_o the_o sight_n and_o as_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o behold_v it_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v unto_o he_o 32._o say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob._n then_o moses_n tremble_v and_o dare_v not_o behold_v paraphrase_n 32._o and_o this_o voice_n of_o god_n by_o a_o angel_n speak_v and_o perhaps_o as_o it_o be_v usual_a thunder_v join_v with_o it_o be_v so_o terrible_a to_o he_o and_o the_o flame_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o bush_n so_o glorious_a and_o illustrious_a that_o he_o dare_v not_o look_v upon_o it_o but_o hide_v his_o face_n exod._n 3._o 6._o 33._o then_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o he_o put_v off_o thy_o shoe_n from_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n where_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n paraphrase_n 33._o this_o appearance_n of_o a_o angel_n be_v a_o argument_n and_o evidence_n of_o my_o peculiar_a presence_n from_o which_o any_o place_n be_v call_v holy_a and_o therefore_o in_o reverence_n due_a to_o such_o a_o presence_n put_v off_o thy_o shoe_n etc._n etc._n 34._o i_o have_v see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o 〈◊〉_d affliction_n of_o my_o people_n which_o be_v in_o egypt_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v their_o groan_a and_o be_o come_v down_o to_o deliver_v they_o and_o now_o come_v i_o will_v send_v thou_o into_o egypt_n paraphrase_n 34._o now_o be_v the_o time_n come_v wherein_o i_o will_v certain_o visit_v &_o relieve_v that_o people_n of_o i_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n which_o according_a to_o what_o i_o foretell_v he_o see_v v._n 6._o have_v be_v use_v like_o slave_n in_o egypt_n a_o long_a time_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n now_o i_o have_v send_v down_o my_o angel_n the_o only_a way_n of_o my_o peculiar_a presence_n in_o any_o one_o place_n that_o i_o may_v commune_v with_o thou_o and_o send_v thou_o on_o this_o message_n as_o my_o commissioner_n to_o bring_v they_o out_o thence_o 35._o this_o moses_n who_o they_o refuse_v say_v who_o make_v thou_o a_o ruler_n and_o a_o judge_n the_o same_o do_v god_n send_v to_o be_v a_o ruler_n and_o deliverer_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o bush_n paraphrase_n 35._o and_o so_o that_o moses_n that_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v to_o avenge_v their_o injury_n or_o compose_v their_o quarrel_n ver_fw-la 27_o 28._o be_v now_o send_v by_o god_n to_o lead_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n and_o to_o this_o end_n a_o angel_n send_v to_o talk_v with_o he_o and_o give_v he_o his_o commission_n which_o be_v do_v in_o a_o glorious_a manner_n by_o a_o flame_n in_o but_o not_o consume_v the_o bush_n 36._o he_o bring_v they_o out_o after_o that_o he_o have_v show_v wonder_n and_o sign_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o in_o the_o red-sea_n and_o in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n paraphrase_n 36._o and_o at_o last_o after_o the_o work_n of_o many_o terrible_a prodigy_n first_o in_o egypt_n then_o at_o their_o departure_n in_o the_o red-sea_n he_o rescue_v they_o out_o of_o pharaoh_n hand_n and_o after_o forty_o year_n spend_v in_o the_o wilderness_n to_o punish_v their_o murmur_a and_o to_o show_v forth_o more_o of_o god_n power_n and_o miracle_n in_o sustain_v they_o there_o they_o be_v at_o last_o bring_v by_o joshua_n into_o canaan_n 37._o this_o be_v that_o moses_n which_o say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n a_o prophet_n shall_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n raise_v up_o unto_o you_o of_o your_o brethren_n like_v unto_o i_o he_o shall_v you_o hear_v paraphrase_n 37._o now_o what_o be_v this_o moses_n all_o this_o while_n but_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v the_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o send_v another_o great_a prophet_n to_o you_o in_o these_o late_a day_n the_o messiah_n which_o though_o he_o be_v god_n from_o heaven_n yet_o shall_v here_o be_v bear_v in_o a_o ordinary_a condition_n of_o a_o daughter_n of_o abraham_n and_o warn_v you_o to_o be_v sure_a to_o receive_v and_o entertain_v he_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v assure_v you_o that_o if_o you_o hear_v not_o receive_v not_o him_z you_o shall_v which_o be_v the_o point_n in_o hand_n which_o stephen_n be_v all_o this_o while_n a_o demonstrate_v in_o answer_n to_o what_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n ch_n 6._o 14._o be_v utter_o destroy_v act._n 3._o 32._o 38._o this_o be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o the_o angel_n which_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o the_o mount_n sinai_n and_o with_o our_o father_n who_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d the_o lively_a oracle_n to_o give_v unto_o we_o paraphrase_n 38._o this_o moses_n afterward_o when_o the_o people_n be_v encamp_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v call_v up_o to_o mount_v sinai_n where_o a_o angel_n speak_v to_o he_o and_o the_o israelite_n and_o deliver_v the_o law_n to_o they_o see_v note_n on_o rom._n 3._o a._n 39_o to_o who_o our_o father_n will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d obey_v but_o thrust_v he_o from_o they_o and_o in_o their_o heart_n turn_v back_o again_o into_o egypt_n 40._o say_v unto_o aaron_n make_v we_o god_n to_o go_v before_o we_o for_o as_o for_o this_o moses_n which_o bring_v we_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n we_o wot_v not_o what_o be_v become_v of_o he_o paraphrase_n 39_o 40._o and_o after_o all_o these_o prodigy_n and_o miracle_n use_v by_o god_n to_o give_v he_o authority_n among_o they_o the_o israelite_n murmur_v &_o rebel_v against_o he_o still_o and_o have_v more_o mind_n to_o be_v in_o egypt_n again_o then_o under_o his_o government_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n make_v they_o picture_n of_o the_o egyptian_n god_n to_o go_v before_o and_o lead_v they_o as_o moses_n do_v viz._n a_o calf_n v._n 41._o only_o upon_o pretence_n that_o moses_n have_v forsake_v they_o be_v go_v they_o know_v not_o whither_o when_o indeed_o he_o be_v only_o call_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o mount_n to_o receive_v commandment_n to_o give_v unto_o they_o 41._o and_o they_o make_v a_o calf_n in_o those_o day_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o the_o idol_n and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n paraphrase_n 41._o and_o when_o they_o have_v make_v this_o calf_n they_o very_o solemn_o worship_v it_o and_o by_o sacrifice_n and_o festivity_n celebrate_v that_o idol_n which_o they_o themselves_o make_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o god_n himself_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v worship_v 42._o then_o god_n turn_v and_o give_v they_o up_o to_o worship_v the_o host_n of_o heaven_n as_o
now_o while_o paul_n wait_v for_o they_o at_o athens_n his_o spirit_n be_v 〈◊〉_d stir_v in_o he_o idol_n when_o he_o see_v the_o city_n note_z b_o whole_o give_v to_o idolatry_n 17._o therefore_o dispute_v he_o in_o the_o synagogue_n with_o the_o jew_n and_o 50._o with_o the_o devout_a person_n and_o in_o the_o market_n daily_o with_o they_o that_o meet_v with_o he_o paraphrase_n 17._o and_o thereupon_o he_o do_v not_o only_o preach_v in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o proselyte_n but_o in_o other_o place_n of_o concourse_n he_o take_v occasion_n to_o make_v know_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o all_o the_o heathen_n that_o he_o meet_v with_o there_o 18._o then_o certain_a philosopher_n of_o the_o epicurean_o and_o of_o the_o stoic_n encounter_v he_o and_o some_o say_v what_o will_v fellow_n this_o note_n c_o babbler_n say_v other_o some_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o setter_n forth_o of_o strange_a god_n because_o he_o preach_v unto_o they_o note_n d_o jesus_n and_o the_o resurrection_n paraphrase_n 18._o and_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o athens_n of_o the_o two_o contrary_a sect_n one_o that_o deny_v all_o providence_n the_o other_o that_o deny_v all_o freedom_n of_o will_n 19_o and_o they_o take_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o unto_fw-la note_n e_o areopagus_n say_v may_v we_o know_v what_o this_o new_a doctrine_n whereof_o thou_o speak_v be_v paraphrase_n 19_o to_o the_o place_n of_o judicature_n at_o athens_n and_o examine_v he_o what_o new_a religion_n it_o be_v that_o he_o teach_v 20._o for_o thou_o bring_v certain_a strange_a thing_n to_o our_o care_n we_o will_v know_v therefore_o what_o these_o thing_n mean_v paraphrase_n 20._o for_o all_o that_o yet_o we_o hear_v be_v very_o new_a and_o strange_a we_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o full_a account_n of_o all_o 21._o for_o all_o the_o athenian_n and_o stranger_n which_o 〈◊〉_d be_v there_o spend_v their_o time_n in_o nothing_o else_o 59_o but_o either_o to_o tell_v or_o to_o hear_v some_o new_a thing_n 22._o then_o paul_n stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o mars_n hill_n and_o say_v you_o man_n of_o athens_n 〈◊〉_d i_o perceive_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o be_v too_o note_n f_o superstitious_a paraphrase_n 22._o paul_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o judge_n in_o areopagus_n say_v you_o athenian_n have_v a_o great_a number_n of_o god_n which_o you_o worship_v than_o any_o other_o city_n have_v 23._o for_o as_o i_o pass_v by_o and_o behold_v your_o 4._o devotion_n i_o find_v a_o altar_n with_o this_o inscription_n note_n g_o to_o the_o unknown_a god_n who_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d you_o ignorant_o worship_n he_o declare_v i_o unto_o you_o 24_o god_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n therein_o see_v that_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n paraphrase_n 23_o 24._o this_o god_n therefore_o who_o you_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o know_v and_o yet_o profess_v to_o worship_n be_v he_o that_o i_o preach_v the_o invisible_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n ruler_n because_o creator_n of_o all_o which_o can_v be_v contain_v in_o any_o shrine_n of_o man_n frame_v 25._o neither_o be_v worship_v with_o man_n hand_n 〈◊〉_d as_o though_o he_o need_v any_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d see_v he_o give_v to_o all_o ●●fe_n and_o breath_n and_o all_o thing_n paraphrase_n 25._o nor_o can_v any_o image_n make_v by_o man_n be_v a_o proper_a instrument_n to_o worship_n or_o propitiate_v he_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o want_v any_o help_n of_o we_o that_o he_o give_v to_o all_o their_o very_a life_n and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v 26._o and_o have_v make_v of_o one_o blood_n all_o nation_n of_o man_n for_o to_o dwell_v on_o all_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v determine_v the_o time_n before_o appoint_v and_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o habitation_n paraphrase_n 26._o and_o from_o one_o adam_n first_o and_o then_o from_o one_o noah_n have_v frame_v a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n fix_v time_n and_o place_n in_o great_a order_n and_o wisdom_n of_o disposal_n 27._o that_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o lord_n if_o haply_o they_o may_v 〈◊〉_d feel_v after_o he_o and_o find_v he_o though_o he_o be_v not_o far_o from_o every_o one_o of_o we_o paraphrase_n 27._o and_o the_o end_n of_o all_o that_o be_v that_o they_o may_v look_v after_o he_o that_o create_v they_o and_o worship_v he_o and_o though_o they_o be_v leave_v through_o their_o sin_n as_o in_o the_o dark_a in_o gross_a ignorance_n yet_o be_v god_n so_o palpable_o to_o be_v discern_v that_o by_o feeling_n or_o grope_v as_o blind_a man_n in_o that_o dark_a they_o may_v if_o they_o will_v but_o seek_v find_v he_o who_o be_v indeed_o very_a near_o every_o one_o of_o we_o even_o as_o the_o soul_n that_o animate_v every_o one_o 28._o for_o note_v h_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v as_o certain_a also_o of_o your_o own_o poet_n have_v say_v for_o we_o be_v also_o his_o offspring_n paraphrase_n 28._o for_o our_o life_n motion_n and_o subsistence_n be_v whole_o through_o he_o according_a to_o that_o which_o aratus_n a_o heathen_a poet_n say_v 29._o for_o as_o much_o then_o as_o we_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o god_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v that_o the_o godhead_n be_v like_a to_o gold_n or_o silver_n or_o stone_n grave_v by_o art_n and_o man_n device_n paraphrase_n 29._o god_n therefore_o be_v our_o creator_n can_v in_o no_o reason_n be_v suppose_v by_o we_o his_o workmanship_n to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o our_o hand_n such_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o gold_n or_o silver_n or_o stone_n with_o a_o signature_n upon_o it_o 30._o and_o the_o time_n of_o this_o ignorance_n god_n 〈◊〉_d wink_v at_o but_o now_o command_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v paraphrase_n 30._o and_o it_o be_v certain_o long_a enough_o that_o man_n have_v go_v on_o in_o such_o prodigious_a conceit_n as_o this_o be_v it_o therefore_o now_o know_v unto_o you_o that_o there_o be_v place_n of_o repentance_n if_o you_o will_v make_v haste_n to_o accept_v it_o for_o god_n not_o look_v or_o fasten_v his_o eye_n upon_o the_o continue_a idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n for_o many_o year_n which_o may_v provoke_v he_o to_o desert_n they_o for_o ever_o now_o send_v we_o to_o you_o their_o progeny_n to_o call_v you_o to_o repentance_n enter_v a_o new_a covenant_n with_o you_o as_o well_o as_o other_o a_o covenant_n of_o free_a pardon_n upon_o reformation_n 31._o because_o he_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n in_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n with_o righteousness_n by_o that_o man_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v 〈◊〉_d whereof_o he_o have_v give_v assurance_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a paraphrase_n 31._o have_v now_o determine_v the_o way_n by_o which_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v judge_v viz._n by_o their_o receive_n or_o not_o receive_v of_o christ_n who_o by_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o have_v hold_v out_o to_o all_o man_n to_o believe_v on_o and_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v now_o refuse_v he_o 32._o and_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a some_o mock_v and_o other_o say_v we_o will_v hear_v thou_o again_o of_o this_o matter_n paraphrase_n 32._o and_o when_o he_o mention_v that_o of_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a some_o of_o those_o learned_a man_n the_o epicurean_o especial_o which_o deny_v all_o future_a life_n fall_v a_o scoff_a 33._o so_o paul_n depart_v from_o among_o they_o 34._o howbeit_o certain_a man_n cleave_v unto_o he_o and_o believe_v among_o the_o which_o be_v dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n and_o a_o woman_n name_v damaris_n and_o other_o with_o they_o paraphrase_n 34._o and_o some_o believe_v and_o associate_v with_o he_o particular_o dionysius_n one_o of_o the_o senator_n or_o judge_n in_o areopagus_n see_v note_n c._n and_o damaris_n his_o wife_n and_o some_o other_o annotation_n on_o the_o act_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n chap._n xvii_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 6._o turn_v the_o world_n upside_o down_o what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v will_v best_o be_v discern_v by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n gal._n 5._o 12._o ther●●e_n render_v it_o trouble_v and_o so_o it_o appear_v to_o signify_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o v_o 10._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o he_o that_o trouble_v you_o shall_v bear_v his_o own_o judgement_n as_o before_o he_o say_v c._n 1._o 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o trouble_v you_o so_o act._n 15._o 24._o the_o same_o be_v express_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o trouble_v you_o with_o word_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v resolve_v by_o the_o use_n of_o other_o author_n
nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n paraphrase_n 15._o the_o renew_v regenerate_v heart_n c._n 5._o b._n 16._o and_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n be_v on_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 16._o all_o renew_v regenerate_v person_n which_o whether_o circumcise_v or_o no_o be_v equal_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n 17._o from_o henceforth_o let_v no_o man_n trouble_v i_o for_o i_o bear_v in_o my_o body_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n paraphrase_n 17._o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v i_o shall_v be_v glad_a if_o they_o that_o be_v christian_n or_o will_v be_v esteem_v so_o will_v not_o cause_v trouble_n or_o vexation_n to_o i_o for_o i_o be_o now_o otherwise_o employ_v then_o to_o need_v that_o trouble_n and_o have_v great_a evidence_n of_o my_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o christ_n then_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o office_n and_o my_o acceptance_n with_o he_o howsoever_o i_o be_o look_v on_o by_o you_o for_o i_o have_v on_o i_o those_o affliction_n which_o be_v mark_n and_o note_n of_o a_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o testify_v i_o to_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o long_a before_o he_o will_v seize_v i_o as_o his_o own_o peculiar_a 18._o brethren_n the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o your_o spirit_n amen_n unto_o the_o galatian_n epistle_n write_v from_o rome_n paraphrase_n 18._o the_o favour_n and_o love_a kindness_n annotation_n on_o chap._n vi_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 1._o spiritual_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spiritual_a here_o may_v appear_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d spirit_n luk._n 9_o d._n which_o signify_v not_o only_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o man_n be_v reform_v and_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n mortify_v but_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o power_n and_o gift_n which_o be_v bestow_v on_o man_n in_o the_o church_n in_o order_n to_o ministerial_a function_n or_o office_n there_o and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d spiritual_a be_v here_o thus_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o proportion_n to_o and_o by_o analogy_n with_o these_o may_v be_v guess_v by_o the_o several_n which_o here_o follow_v first_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d spirit_n of_o meekness_n which_o these_o spiritual_a man_n be_v to_o use_v this_o clear_o belong_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n vest_v in_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v therefore_o set_v opposite_a to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o rod_n 1_o cor._n 〈◊〉_d 4._o 21._o where_o as_o come_v with_o the_o rod_n evident_o signify_v proceed_v to_o discipline_n to_o censure_n of_o excommunication_n so_o come_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d discipline_v in_o meekness_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 24._o be_v admonish_v those_o meek_o that_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o who_o that_o method_n of_o fraternal_a reprehension_n be_v first_o necessary_a as_o perhaps_o also_o admit_v to_o repentance_n and_o absolution_n those_o that_o have_v reform_v upon_o the_o infliction_n of_o the_o censure_n 〈◊〉_d and_o according_o this_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n here_o be_v this_o mild_a part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n which_o be_v to_o precede_v the_o more_o severe_a and_o to_o prevent_v it_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a first_o admonition_n and_o reprehension_n which_o if_o they_o prevail_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o proceed_v any_o far_o and_o second_o a_o easy_a admission_n to_o penitence_n in_o case_n the_o censure_n have_v pass_v upon_o he_o without_o proceed_v to_o any_o high_a degree_n of_o censure_n as_o in_o case_n of_o obstinacy_n may_v be_v seasonable_a to_o this_o second_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v incline_v 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v restore_v but_o signify_v proper_o to_o put_v in_o joint_a any_o member_n of_o a_o body_n which_o be_v dislocate_v and_o so_o it_o fit_o belong_v to_o the_o restore_v a_o excommunicate_a person_n to_o the_o society_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o yet_o not_o only_o so_o but_o signify_v also_o to_o recover_v the_o offender_n to_o a_o sense_n and_o reformation_n be_v it_o by_o admonition_n reprehension_n or_o any_o such_o mild_a mean_n see_v note_n on_o 2_o cor._n 13._o c._n and_o the_o do_v of_o this_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o these_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o spiritual_a 〈◊〉_d v._o 11._o how_o large_a a_o letter_n what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v theophylact_fw-mi have_v express_v his_o opinion_n s._n paul_n say_v he_o be_v accuse_v to_o preach_v in_o other_o place_n for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n contrary_a to_o what_o this_o epistle_n contain_v this_o force_v he_o to_o testify_v what_o here_o he_o say_v under_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o he_o do_v no_o where_o preach_v for_o the_o law_n c._n 5._o 2._o and_o c._n 6._o 14._o and_o therefore_o whereas_o his_o other_o epistle_n be_v oft_o write_v by_o a_o amanuensis_fw-la and_o only_o the_o salutation_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n yet_o here_o say_v he_o he_o be_v force_v to_o write_v all_o himself_o and_o that_o as_o he_o will_v conjecture_v though_o he_o be_v not_o very_o well_o skill_v in_o writing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o and_o this_o as_o he_o think_v be_v note_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v by_o hesychius_n render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o how_o long_o or_o how_o great_a but_o of_o what_o manner_n what_o sort_n note_v the_o quality_n rather_o than_o quantity_n 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v letter_n mean_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o alphabet_n and_o not_o so_o proper_o a_o epistle_n and_o according_o sai_z theophylact_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v not_o to_o denote_v the_o length_n or_o magnitude_n but_o the_o deformity_n of_o the_o letter_n or_o character_n in_o which_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v s._n paul_n be_v necessitate_v to_o write_v it_o all_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n but_o now_o grant_v as_o we_o have_v reason_n this_o to_o be_v the_o right_a notion_n of_o the_o single_a word_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n either_o this_o shall_v be_v thus_o apply_v to_o the_o illness_n of_o the_o character_n or_o enlarge_v to_o the_o write_v the_o whole_a epistle_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o intimate_v in_o any_o other_o place_n or_o in_o any_o ancient_a record_n and_o this_o one_o place_n can_v conclude_v it_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d note_v the_o sort_n or_o kind_n of_o the_o hand_n indefinite_o not_o define_v what_o it_o be_v save_v only_o that_o it_o be_v such_o as_o be_v know_v to_o be_v he_o for_o so_o 2_o thess_n 3._o 17._o the_o writing_n the_o salutation_n some_o few_o word_n in_o the_o close_a with_o his_o own_o hand_n be_v say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o token_n in_o every_o epistle_n that_o by_o which_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v he_o and_o so_o if_o here_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o whole_a epistle_n be_v write_v by_o a_o amanuensis_fw-la as_o far_o as_o to_o c._n 6._o v._n 11._o and_o then_o the_o pen_n take_v into_o the_o apostle_n own_o hand_n and_o use_v by_o he_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n he_o may_v well_o begin_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o see_v and_o know_v with_o what_o kind_n of_o letter_n i_o have_v write_v you_o know_v the_o character_n that_o it_o be_v my_o own_o hand_n under_o which_o it_o be_v that_o i_o testify_v all_o that_o be_v before_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n particular_o that_o which_o be_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o calumny_n against_o i_o as_o if_o i_o preach_v circumcision_n etc._n etc._n in_o other_o place_n which_o i_o have_v assure_v you_o and_o demonstrate_v by_o my_o persecution_n from_o the_o jew_n that_o i_o do_v not_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n i_o here_o add_v again_o under_o my_o own_o hand_n a_o character_n of_o your_o gnostick_n seducer_n v_o 12_o 13._o and_o the_o profession_n of_o my_o own_o opinion_n and_o practice_n v_o 16_o 18._o and_o again_o a_o evidence_n of_o my_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n from_o my_o suffering_n v_o 17._o and_o thus_o the_o whole_a difficulty_n be_v sufficient_o explicate_v without_o imagine_v any_o more_o 〈◊〉_d or_o if_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v write_v be_v think_v to_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v write_v that_o which_o go_v before_o and_o so_o the_o whole_a epistle_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v
and_o subordinate_o to_o he_o 23._o which_o be_v his_o body_n the_o fullness_n of_o he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o paraphrase_n 23._o the_o church_n i_o say_v which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o be_v require_v to_o make_v he_o perfect_a in_o this_o relative_a perfection_n as_o the_o body_n be_v require_v and_o necessary_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o head_n though_o absolute_o consider_v he_o be_v most_o exact_o perfect_a of_o himself_o see_v note_n on_o rom._n 11._o d._n annotation_n on_o chap._n i._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 4_o choose_v we_o in_o he_o what_o be_v the_o notion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d choose_n in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o place_n will_v be_v find_v set_v down_o at_o large_a note_v on_o 1_o pet._n 2._o c._n all_o that_o must_v here_o fit_o be_v inquire_v be_v 〈◊〉_d what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n choose_v in_o christ_n and_o that_o will_v best_o be_v discern_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bless_v we_o in_o christ_n ver_fw-la 3._o for_o that_o the_o blessing_n and_o the_o elect_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o matter_n appear_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a as_o 〈◊〉_d a_o term_n of_o proportion_n or_o similitude_n in_o the_o front_n of_o this_o verse_n which_o make_v the_o connexion_n betwixt_o they_o thus_o that_o god_n have_v bless_v we_o in_o christ_n according_a as_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v that_o his_o actual_a present_a blessing_n they_o at_o that_o point_n of_o time_n be_v correspondent_a to_o what_o god_n have_v decree_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n now_o what_o the_o blessing_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v appear_v in_o general_a by_o the_o addition_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o spiritual_a blessing_n or_o blessing_n in_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o heaven_n and_o again_o by_o the_o predestination_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n precedent_n to_o it_o which_o be_v specify_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o adoption_n and_o last_o by_o what_o be_v here_o add_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o we_o to_o be_v or_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o unblemished_a before_o he_o in_o love_n all_o which_o specify_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o election_n here_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v the_o same_o as_o of_o his_o blessing_n of_o we_o viz._n our_o holy_a blameless_a conversation_n such_o as_o become_v son_n of_o god_n a_o spiritual_a christian_a obedience_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n such_o as_o christ_n come_v to_o plant_v in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v say_v to_o bless_v we_o in_o turn_v every_o one_o from_o his_o iniquity_n act._n 3._o 26._o and_o so_o it_o be_v here_o distinct_o add_v c._n 2._o 10._o that_o good_a work_n be_v the_o thing_n to_o which_o god_n have_v before_o prepare_v that_o be_v elect_v us_o that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o this_o then_o be_v the_o general_a matter_n of_o the_o election_n here_o speak_v of_o not_o salvation_n or_o bliss_n in_o another_o world_n but_o holiness_n or_o piety_n here_o be_v yet_o far_o determine_v or_o limit_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o he_o or_o in_o christ_n specify_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o bring_v all_o particular_o the_o gentile_n to_o this_o holy_a life_n from_o all_o eternity_n predetermine_v by_o god_n to_o do_v so_o as_o in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o act_v god_n send_v he_o thus_o to_o bless_v we_o and_o this_o christ_n have_v do_v by_o reveal_v god_n will_v both_o in_o the_o precept_n which_o contain_v this_o holy_a and_o blameless_a life_n in_o they_o and_o by_o his_o promise_n which_o so_o strong_o and_o powerful_o invite_v and_o oblige_v and_o by_o his_o terror_n or_o threat_n which_o engage_v we_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o precept_n and_o so_o again_o by_o the_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n which_o signify_v he_o to_o be_v send_v by_o god_n but_o especial_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n the_o first_o to_o testify_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o preach_v and_o withal_o to_o expiate_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o strike_v and_o seal_v in_o his_o blood_n a_o covenant_n of_o mercy_n with_o all_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n of_o pardon_n of_o forego_v sin_n upon_o condition_n of_o reformation_n and_o amendment_n and_o of_o give_v strength_n and_o grace_n to_o perform_v what_o god_n now_o under_o this_o covenant_n require_v of_o we_o without_o which_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o encouragement_n to_o amend_v so_o we_o have_v be_v utter_o unable_a to_o have_v perform_v that_o work_n of_o reformation_n and_o the_o second_o to_o confirm_v from_o heaven_n that_o he_o die_v a_o innocent_a person_n in_o the_o testimony_n of_o that_o truth_n thus_o own_v by_o his_o father_n and_o by_o enstate_v he_o in_o that_o power_n and_o dominion_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n to_o enstate_v on_o he_o also_o the_o power_n of_o actual_a give_v that_o grace_n to_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n which_o by_o his_o death_n he_o purchase_v for_o all_o this_o then_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o god_n elect_v in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n god_n free_a undeserved_a mercy_n in_o decree_a to_o bestow_v christ_n upon_o all_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o all_o other_o most_o effectual_a to_o engage_v and_o bring_v man_n to_o holiness_n and_o purity_n of_o life_n that_o be_v by_o what_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v for_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n to_o call_v and_o bring_v home_o sinner_n of_o all_o sort_n to_o repentance_n and_o this_o far_a appear_v v_o 9_o 10._o where_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o will_n according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o his_o election_n here_o be_v specify_v to_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gather_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v jew_n and_o gentile_n together_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v make_v christ_n the_o mean_n of_o call_v and_o bring_v in_o the_o most_o idolatrous_a gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n to_o receive_v the_o faith_n and_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o a_o great_a part_n see_z ch_z 2._o of_o this_o ensue_a epistle_n all_o which_o as_o it_o make_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n to_o be_v the_o matter_n wherein_o god_n election_n here_o be_v terminate_v and_o be_v very_o far_o from_o denote_v any_o irrespective_a decree_n of_o bestow_v eternal_a salvation_n on_o some_o few_o which_o include_v the_o absolute_a rejection_n or_o dereliction_n of_o all_o other_o so_o it_o no_o way_n infer_v their_o faith_n or_o repentance_n to_o be_v irresistible_o wrought_v in_o they_o by_o this_o decree_n of_o election_n or_o by_o the_o mean_v determine_v therein_o but_o only_o that_o god_n have_v in_o christ_n pitch_v on_o most_o wise_a most_o powerful_a most_o efficacious_a mean_n of_o call_v and_o melt_v even_o the_o gentile_n the_o worst_a of_o man_n which_o he_o likewise_o foresee_v will_v be_v effectual_a on_o many_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n though_o many_o other_o through_o their_o own_o obstinacy_n will_v contemn_v and_o not_o make_v use_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 10._o gather_v together_o in_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o arithmetic_n signify_v a_o sum_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o put_v many_o member_n together_o into_o one_o hence_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o put_v many_o several_n together_o and_o when_o it_o be_v use_v of_o speech_n then_o it_o be_v to_o speak_v brief_o and_o summary_o eccles_n 32._o 8._o and_o so_o say_v chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n to_o contract_v a_o long_a discourse_n into_o few_o word_n it_o be_v use_v in_o military_a affair_n for_o the_o contract_n or_o put_v together_o scatter_v soldier_n into_o one_o troop_n in_o rhetoric_n it_o be_v the_o repeat_n and_o gather_v the_o head_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n or_o oration_n in_o all_o it_o be_v the_o bring_n into_o one_o those_o that_o be_v several_a and_o so_o it_o be_v here_o the_o unite_n and_o join_v together_o of_o those_o that_o be_v disparate_a and_o serve_v before_o the_o same_o that_o in_o the_o parallel_n place_n col._n 1._o 20._o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bing_v all_o to_o a_o agreement_n or_o pacification_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 11._o obtain_v a_o inheritance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o right_a read_n signify_v to_o be_v take_v as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lot_n or_o patrimony_n in_o
in_o all_o respect_n às_o one_o that_o have_v the_o primogeniture_n of_o maintenance_n to_o which_o v_o 18._o refer_v as_o well_o as_o dignity_n especial_o if_o his_o pain_n be_v extraordinary_a as_o it_o must_v be_v if_o he_o both_o preach_v the_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v not_o before_o hear_v 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o preach_v rom._n 15._o 20._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o preach_v and_o take_v pain_n in_o far_o instruct_v the_o believer_n in_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d teach_v or_o doctrine_n for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o that_o signify_v wage_n reward_n of_o service_n appear_v among_o many_o other_o by_o the_o three_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n honour_n widow_n that_o be_v relieve_v maintain_v they_o so_o joh._n 12._o 26._o where_n speak_v of_o those_o that_o attend_v on_o and_o minister_v to_o christ_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n shall_v honour_v that_o be_v reward_v he_o or_o pay_v he_o his_o wage_n but_o especial_o mat._n 15._o where_o the_o command_n of_o god_n of_o honour_v the_o parent_n ver_fw-la 6_o be_v express_v v._n 5._o by_o give_v they_o that_o by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v profit_v that_o be_v maintenance_n etc._n etc._n see_v col._n 2._o note_n i._n so_o in_o nicolaus_n damascenus_n of_o the_o thyni_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o honour_v that_o be_v entertain_v receive_v stranger_n exceed_o so_o act._n 28._o 10._o they_o of_o the_o island_n honour_v paul_n with_o many_o honour_n give_v he_o provision_n for_o his_o journey_n 〈◊〉_d as_o for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v join_v to_o it_o although_o that_o come_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d worthy_a yet_o it_o signify_v without_o any_o reference_n to_o that_o simple_o to_o enjoy_v to_o receive_v to_o have_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o many_o evidence_n among_o author_n one_o for_o all_o that_o of_o justin_n martyr_n or_o the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n he_o say_v of_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o they_o have_v be_v count_v worthy_a but_o they_o have_v have_v have_v be_v endue_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o divinity_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 19_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v not_o a_o accusation_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n here_o must_v be_v explain_v by_o the_o judicial_a proceed_n among_o the_o jew_n where_o before_o the_o give_v of_o the_o sentence_n there_o be_v three_o part_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o admission_n of_o the_o cause_n or_o suit_n when_o the_o judge_n do_v not_o reject_v the_o complaint_n or_o accuser_n and_o that_o be_v here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o admit_v a_o accusation_n and_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o isa_n 1._o 23._o neither_o do_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o widow_n come_v unto_o they_o the_o character_n of_o a_o unjust_a judge_n that_o he_o admit_v not_o the_o widow_n complaint_n against_o the_o oppressor_n after_o the_o complaint_n be_v admit_v than_o 2_o dly_a there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o suit_n or_o complaint_n when_o the_o accuser_n confirm_v his_o suggestion_n by_o oath_n for_o before_o that_o oath_n one_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o the_o contrary_a which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d contradiction_n 〈◊〉_d heb._n 6._o 16._o and_o in_o 37_o lucian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o part_n of_o judicial_a proceed_n the_o judge_n be_v unincline_v to_o either_o side_n but_o then_o come_v in_o the_o oath_n 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o end_n of_o that_o affirm_v and_o deny_v in_o the_o author_n of_o that_o epistle_n take_v away_o the_o aequilibrium_fw-la that_o the_o judge_n be_v in_o before_o and_o by_o it_o he_o be_v now_o confirm_v to_o the_o believe_v the_o one_o part_n against_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d whereupon_o the_o oath_n be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o confirmation_n in_o that_o place_n heb._n 6._o 16._o as_o in_o the_o roman_a law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v psellus_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v_o 12_o 13._o the_o oath_n come_v in_o part_v the_o controversy_n or_o doubt_v and_o in_o leg._n bajuvar_n c._n 12._o tit_n 15._o 2._o in_o his_o verò_fw-la causis_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la praestentur_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la nullam_fw-la probationem_fw-la discussio_fw-la judicantis_fw-la invenerit_fw-la see_v bignon_n not_o in_o marculfi_n form_n l._n 1._o c._n 38._o then_o be_v the_o use_n of_o oath_n when_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o plea_n by_o the_o judge_n yield_v he_o no_o satisfactory_a proof_n the_o 3_o d_o part_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d job_n 29._o 16._o the_o search_a out_o of_o the_o cause_n by_o argument_n afterward_o produce_v causae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o consider_v of_o by_o the_o judge_n the_o first_o of_o these_o only_a it_o be_v that_o belong_v to_o this_o place_n the_o admission_n of_o the_o complaint_n or_o accusation_n which_o against_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o allow_v under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o gravity_n of_o his_o person_n and_o weight_n of_o his_o office_n or_o calling_n who_o must_v not_o be_v defame_v as_o the_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o court_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o defamation_n if_o there_o be_v not_o great_a cause_n for_o it_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 22._o lay_v hand_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lay_v on_o hand_n be_v a_o ceremony_n of_o prayer_n or_o benediction_n be_v ordinary_o know_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n use_v first_o by_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n in_o bestow_v the_o blessing_n upon_o they_o and_o with_o that_o succession_n to_o some_o part_n of_o the_o estate_n so_o when_o jacob_n bless_v the_o child_n of_o joseph_n gen._n 48._o 14._o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o their_o head_n v_o 15._o and_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v among_o they_o accommodate_v to_o the_o communicate_v of_o power_n to_o other_o as_o assistant_n or_o derive_v it_o to_o they_o as_o successor_n so_o when_o moses_n assume_v the_o seventy_o to_o assist_v he_o num._n 11._o 17._o this_o say_v maimonides_n be_v do_v by_o his_o lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o sanhedr_n c._n 4._o and_o when_o he_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o constitute_v joshua_n his_o successor_n god_n appoint_v he_o to_o take_v joshua_n and_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o he_o num._n 27._o 18._o so_o deut._n 34._o 9_o joshua_n be_v full_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n that_o be_v be_v his_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n for_o moses_n have_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o he_o from_o these_o three_o use_n of_o the_o ceremony_n in_o prayer_n in_o paternal_a benediction_n in_o create_v of_o officer_n three_o sort_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o which_o it_o be_v principal_o accommodate_v in_o prayer_n it_o be_v use_v either_o in_o cure_v disease_n or_o pardon_v ●ns_n disease_n the_o corporal_a band_n luk._n 13._o 16._o be_v cure_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n act._n 19_o 17._o and_o 28._o 8._o and_o so_o it_o be_v foretell_v mar._n 16._o 18._o they_o shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o sick_a and_o they_o shall_v recover_v and_o so_o sin_n the_o spiritual_a band_n be_v do_v away_o or_o pardon_v by_o the_o same_o ceremony_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n use_v in_o the_o absolution_n of_o penitent_n thus_o heb._n 6._o 2._o as_o the_o baptism_n be_v those_o use_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o christian_n for_o the_o admission_n of_o proselyte_n so_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v probable_o denote_v the_o restore_n of_o penitent_n that_o be_v lapse_v after_o baptism_n see_v note_n on_o heb._n 6._o b._n from_o that_o of_o paternal_a benediction_n be_v that_o of_o lay_v on_o hand_n in_o blessing_n of_o infant_n mar._n 10._o 16._o by_o that_o mean_n signify_v they_o to_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n as_o those_o that_o have_v title_n to_o this_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o church_n here_o and_o through_o the_o same_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n heaven_n hereafter_o this_o benediction_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n i_o suppose_v it_o be_v that_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n refer_v to_o paedag._n l._n 3._o c._n 11._o in_o these_o word_n tivi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o who_o do_v the_o presbyter_n lay_v hand_n who_o shall_v he_o bless_v mean_v most_o probable_o in_o that_o place_n the_o solemnity_n with_o
bearer_n of_o this_o epistle_n as_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o subscription_n it_o be_v not_o certain_a nor_o if_o we_o will_v judge_v by_o c._n 13._o 23._o probable_a for_o there_o mention_v timothy_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n it_o be_v add_v with_o who_o if_o he_o come_v short_o i_o will_v see_v you_o which_o refer_v to_o the_o author_n intention_n to_o bear_v timothy_n company_n to_o they_o which_o be_v not_o well_o reconcileable_a with_o timothy_n carry_v this_o epistle_n from_o he_o 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o in_o all_o these_o circumstance_n there_o be_v very_o little_a certainty_n as_o for_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v write_v the_o hebrew_n they_o be_v the_o jew_n christian_n which_o the_o author_n have_v know_v in_o judea_n and_o syria_n which_o all_o belong_v to_o jerusalem_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a metropolis_n who_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n be_v by_o the_o infusion_n of_o the_o gnostic_n incline_v to_o great_a caution_n and_o compliance_n and_o consequent_o begin_v to_o forsake_v the_o christian_a assembly_n and_o to_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o monitory_a epistle_n the_o subject_n of_o it_o consequent_o be_v to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n against_o the_o jewish_a pretension_n to_o represent_v the_o great_a danger_n and_o sin_n of_o fall_v off_o and_o to_o fortify_v they_o with_o constancy_n and_o perseverance_n by_o many_o example_n of_o faith_n and_o patience_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o deliverance_n from_o their_o persecutor_n which_o shall_v now_o very_o short_o befall_v they_o c._n 10._o 37._o that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n be_v fancy_v by_o some_o but_o without_o any_o reason_n the_o hebrew_n to_o who_o it_o be_v write_v understanding_n and_o speak_v greek_a from_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v hellenist_n in_o many_o place_n and_o according_o the_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v cite_v in_o this_o epistle_n be_v general_o set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o septuagint_n translation_n which_o be_v in_o use_n with_o the_o hellenist_n jew_n and_o read_v in_o their_o synagogue_n chap._n i._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d god_n who_o at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a manner_n speak_v in_o time_n pass_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n paraphrase_n 1._o god_n which_o use_v former_o several_a step_n or_o degree_n and_o likewise_o several_a way_n and_o mean_n of_o reveal_v to_o man_n the_o thing_n to_o come_v deliver_v they_o out_o in_o portion_n not_o all_o together_o and_o that_o sometime_o by_o vision_n or_o by_o dream_n sometime_o by_o the_o oracle_n sometime_o by_o the_o come_n of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o sometime_o by_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 2._o have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o who_o also_o he_o make_v the_o world_n paraphrase_n 2._o in_o this_o latter_a age_n of_o the_o world_n have_v send_v his_o son_n out_o of_o his_o bosom_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n to_o exercise_v this_o office_n to_o take_v our_o humane_a nature_n upon_o he_o therein_o to_o declare_v with_o more_o authority_n his_o father_n will_n unto_o we_o and_o as_o a_o prophet_n to_o foretell_v his_o design_n of_o deal_n with_o his_o church_n see_v c._n 2._o note_v b._n and_o to_o reward_v his_o fidelity_n in_o this_o office_n he_o have_v give_v he_o dominion_n over_o all_o thing_n power_n to_o command_v the_o judge_n man_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v he_o also_o by_o who_o he_o have_v create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n 3._o who_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n and_o rule_v note_v a_o uphold_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n when_o he_o have_v by_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d purge_v our_o sin_n sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a paraphrase_n 3_o who_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o reflectig_fw-mi to_o we_o the_o sight_n of_o he_o who_o be_v otherwise_o invisible_a joh._n 1._o 18._o and_o have_v perfect_a dominion_n over_o all_o and_o according_o administer_a all_n by_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n do_v his_o part_n towards_o the_o justify_n and_o sancify_v we_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o reform_v our_o wicked_a life_n he_o ascend_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n there_o to_o sit_v as_o have_v finish_v that_o part_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n which_o consist_v in_o sacrifice_v to_o which_o they_o that_o be_v separate_v be_v appoint_v to_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n deut._n 10._o 8._o and_o there_o to_o reign_v and_o as_o a_o king_n to_o defend_v his_o faithful_a servant_n and_o punish_v his_o enemy_n 4._o be_v make_v so_o much_o note_v b_o superior_a better_a than_o the_o angel_n as_o he_o have_v by_o inheritance_n obtain_v a_o more_o excellent_a name_n than_o they_o paraphrase_n 4._o and_o so_o be_v advance_v to_o a_o superiority_n even_o over_o the_o angel_n themselves_o which_o you_o may_v discern_v by_o the_o compellation_n that_o be_v bestow_v on_o he_o far_o high_o than_o any_o that_o be_v bestow_v on_o the_o angel_n 5._o for_o unto_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o again_o i_o will_v be_v to_o he_o a_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o son_n paraphrase_n 5._o as_o that_o of_o son_n in_o the_o second_o psalm_n which_o though_o in_o some_o sense_n it_o belong_v to_o david_n yet_o be_v by_o the_o jew_n themselves_o acknowledge_v in_o a_o more_o sublime_a sense_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o messiah_n so_o likewise_o that_o 2_o sam._n 7._o 14._o deliver_v to_o solomon_n as_o he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o messiah_n which_o in_o some_o degree_n true_a of_o he_o be_v in_o a_o much_o more_o eminent_a manner_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n 6._o and_o again_o when_o 〈◊〉_d he_o bring_v in_o the_o first-begotten_a into_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o paraphrase_n 6._o and_o again_o when_o the_o scripture_n psal_n 97._o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v the_o messiah_n his_o reign_v v_o 1._o and_o in_o the_o process_n of_o the_o psalm_n describe_v his_o enter_v on_o his_o kingdom_n that_o which_o commence_v at_o his_o ascend_n into_o the_o superior_a world_n the_o heaven_n here_o v_o 3._o and_o c._n 2._o 5._o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n be_v v_o 7._o 7._o and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o angel_n he_o say_v who_o make_v his_o angel_n 〈◊〉_d spirit_n and_o his_o minister_n a_o flame_n of_o fire_n paraphrase_n 7._o whereas_o the_o title_n which_o he_o give_v the_o angel_n be_v no_o high_o than_o of_o wind_n and_o flame_n psal_n 104._o 4._o 8._o but_o unto_o the_o son_n he_o say_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o a_o 〈◊〉_d sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n paraphrase_n 8._o but_o he_o give_v far_o high_a title_n to_o the_o messiah_n call_v he_o the_o eternal_a king_n and_o god_n mention_v his_o throne_n and_o sceptre_n and_o his_o great_a justice_n in_o exercise_v his_o regal_a power_n in_o succour_v the_o faithful_a and_o punish_v the_o obdurate_a and_o address_v to_o he_o in_o this_o dialect_n psal_n 45._o 62._o 9_o thou_o have_v love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_a iniquity_n therefore_o god_n even_o thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n paraphrase_n 9_o all_o thy_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n thy_o word_n and_o thy_o example_n have_v be_v design_v for_o the_o advance_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o by_o way_n of_o reward_n for_o that_o god_n have_v entertain_v or_o treat_v thou_o more_o liberal_o than_o any_o other_o see_v note_n on_o mat._n 26._o c._n and_o on_o act._n 10._o c._n prefer_v and_o dignify_v thou_o before_o all_o angel_n and_o man_n 10._o and_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n paraphrase_n 10._o another_o place_n psal_n 102._o 25._o apply_v that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o god_n gen._n 1._o 1._o about_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o messiah_n call_v he_o lord_n and_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o what_o be_v add_v in_o the_o end_n of_o v_o 2._o and_o add_v 11._o they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o remain_v and_o they_o all_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n 12._o and_o as_o
testament_n save_v only_o in_o saint_n john_n write_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a here_o to_o take_v it_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o particular_o that_o severe_a sanction_n and_o denunciation_n of_o judgement_n against_o all_o that_o hold_v not_o fast_o to_o he_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n those_o that_o open_o or_o clancular_o deny_v he_o by_o their_o word_n or_o action_n for_o it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v accommodate_v to_o the_o present_a condition_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o judaea_n who_o be_v now_o daily_o solicit_v by_o the_o gnostic_n and_o draw_v off_o from_o their_o constancy_n and_o purity_n do_v labour_n by_o all_o argument_n to_o fortify_v they_o and_o in_o this_o chapter_n do_v it_o by_o two_o argument_n one_o depend_v on_o the_o other_o first_o from_o the_o advantage_n which_o they_o shall_v reap_v by_o a_o constant_a adhere_n to_o christ_n not_o only_o eternal_a rest_n in_o heaven_n a_o ample_a reward_n for_o all_o their_o persecution_n whatever_o they_o be_v but_o even_o in_o this_o life_n more_o peaceable_a day_n of_o profess_v and_o worship_v christ_n when_o the_o unbelieving_a jew_n the_o persecutor_n shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o that_o time_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n c._n 10._o 37._o and_o this_o have_v former_o be_v explain_v to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rest_n that_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o a_o rest_n from_o the_o labour_n that_o be_v wearisome_a persecution_n and_o pressure_n that_o lay_v upon_o they_o this_o he_o resemble_v to_o the_o israelite_n canaan_n as_o in_o the_o refreshment_n that_o it_o yield_v the_o people_n of_o god_n after_o a_o sad_a travail_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o in_o the_o propriety_n that_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n have_v in_o it_o none_o but_o they_o admit_v to_o it_o when_o they_o that_o have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o receive_v the_o law_n from_o god_n mouth_n at_o sinai_n and_o so_o be_v high_o favour_v and_o dignify_v by_o he_o yet_o upon_o their_o murmur_a and_o fall_v back_o towards_o egypt_n in_o their_o heart_n through_o impatience_n of_o hardship_n and_o the_o like_a herein_o direct_o parallel_v to_o the_o gnostic_n and_o those_o that_o be_v seduce_v by_o they_o who_o either_o secret_o or_o open_o forsake_v christ_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o destroy_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o not_o a_o man_n of_o they_o enter_v into_o canaan_n and_o according_o the_o second_o argument_n be_v here_o take_v from_o the_o severity_n of_o christ_n denunciation_n against_o these_o every_o where_o in_o the_o gospel_n which_o shall_v thus_o fall_v off_o from_o he_o the_o seed_n on_o the_o stony_a ground_n and_o they_o that_o be_v scandalize_v in_o he_o and_o they_o that_o seek_v to_o save_v their_o life_n etc._n etc._n which_o denunciation_n say_v the_o author_n here_o shall_v like_o a_o divine_a vengeance_n sharp_a say_v theophylact_v than_o war_n or_o sword_n be_v to_o the_o rebellious_a israelite_n certain_o find_v out_o every_o one_o that_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o it_o how_o secret_o soever_o he_o have_v contrive_v it_o this_o be_v here_o rhetorical_o and_o figurative_o express_v by_o the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o priest_n knife_n cut_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n proceed_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o least_o and_o the_o most_o secret_a part_n of_o it_o the_o nerve_n the_o least_o and_o the_o marrow_n the_o inmost_a part_n and_o all_o this_o mean_v but_o to_o assure_v they_o that_o they_o which_o thus_o fall_v off_o shall_v never_o be_v conceal_v this_o vengeance_n foretell_v will_v find_v they_o out_o if_o they_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o make_v good_a their_o constancy_n and_o so_o to_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o to_o who_o the_o rest_n be_v promise_v which_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o exhortation_n ver_fw-la 11._o which_o this_o be_v set_v to_o back_n as_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v live_v etc._n etc._n upon_o which_o it_o follow_v ver_fw-la 14._o that_o we_o shall_v therefore_o hold_v fast_o our_o profession_n or_o a_o vow_a confession_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o christ_n consider_v what_o he_o have_v suffer_v before_o we_o by_o which_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o will_v assist_v and_o relieve_v we_o if_o we_o stick_v fast_o to_o he_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 13._o open_v the_o notion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o have_v be_v much_o doubt_v of_o i_o conceive_v it_o be_v most_o clear_o that_o which_o phavorinus_n thus_o express_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o signify_v to_o cut_v in_o two_o to_o divide_v down_o the_o spina_n dors●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spondyl_n of_o the_o back-bone_n and_o so_o it_o belong_v clear_o to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o examine_v the_o sacrifice_n whether_o they_o be_v entire_a and_o without_o blemish_n or_o no._n this_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o try_v and_o search_v the_o sacrifice_n as_o in_o lucian_n etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n put_v a_o crown_n on_o the_o beast_n head_n and_o have_v first_o search_v it_o a_o great_a while_n if_o it_o be_v perfect_a they_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o altar_n and_o among_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o look_v as_o a_o momus_n or_o censor_n and_o consider_v whether_o there_o be_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n any_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o blemish_n whether_o all_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d immaculate_a and_o unhurt_a they_o that_o do_v this_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o to_o that_o end_n use_v to_o flay_v the_o body_n first_o and_o then_o cut_v it_o down_o the_o neck_n or_o backbone_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v so_o cut_v to_o lay_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n that_o the_o priest_n may_v search_v and_o look_v into_o the_o inward_o and_o as_o philo_z say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whatsoever_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o belly_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o refer_v that_o of_o solomon_n prov._n 20._o 27._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o man_n be_v the_o candle_n of_o the_o lord_n search_v the_o hide_a part_n of_o the_o belly_n as_o therefore_o the_o entrail_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o most_o secret_a part_n be_v conspicuous_a to_o the_o priest_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o cut_v the_o sacrifice_n thus_o down_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neck_n or_o backbone_n so_o be_v all_o before_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o most_o secret_a thing_n discern_v and_o see_v into_o &_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d naked_a in_o reference_n to_o flay_v take_v off_o the_o skin_n with_o which_o the_o flesh_n be_v clothe_v and_o cover_v and_o cut_v down_o the_o back_n also_o thus_o say_v isidore_n pelusiote_n ep._n l._n 1._o 94._o that_o the_o phrase_n here_o use_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o a_o metaphor_n of_o consecrate_a beast_n bring_v to_o sacrifice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n for_o as_o they_o be_v flay_v be_v make_v naked_a and_o devest_v of_o all_o the_o visible_a cover_n and_o show_v the_o place_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v hide_v within_o and_o be_v cut_v down_o the_o backbone_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v search_v and_o look_v into_o every_o bone_n and_o part_n that_o all_o may_v be_v cleanse_v or_o find_v to_o be_v pure_a before_o they_o be_v sacrifice_v so_o etc._n etc._n hence_o be_v that_o of_o hesychius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o phavorinus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n signify_v discover_v and_o make_v manifest_a 〈◊〉_d v._o 16._o throne_n of_o grace_n the_o jew_n mention_v a_o double_a throne_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o throne_n of_o pity_n or_o mercy_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o throne_n of_o judgement_n and_o they_o add_v that_o when_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o judgement_n he_o see_v the_o multitude_n too_o great_a of_o those_o that_o deserve_v punishment_n he_o than_o remove_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o mercy_n or_o pity_n that_o be_v of_o pardon_n chap._n v._n 1._o for_o every_o high_a priest_n 〈◊〉_d take_v from_o among_o man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d ordain_v for_o man_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v both_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n paraphrase_n 1._o to_o this_o purpose_n of_o christ_n being_n our_o high_a
melchisedek_n as_o a_o act_n of_o bounty_n and_o hospitality_n 106._o opposite_a to_o what_o amalek_n after_o do_v to_o israel_n amalek_n say_v he_o meet_v not_o israel_n with_o bread_n and_o water_n but_o melchisedek_n meet_v abraham_n with_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o present_v it_o to_o he_o 18._o and_o bless_v he_o and_o josephus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o bring_v forth_o gift_n and_o abundance_n of_o victual_n to_o abraham_n army_n and_o at_o the_o feast_n begin_v to_o commend_v abraham_n and_o bless_v god_n that_o have_v subdue_v his_o enemy_n all_o agree_v to_o make_v this_o bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o abraham_n a_o act_n of_o regal_a liberality_n in_o that_o king_n of_o salem_n towards_o that_o stranger_n or_o passenger_n as_o his_o blessing_n he_o be_v of_o his_o priestly_a office_n and_o therefore_o three_o it_o can_v be_v imagine_v that_o abraham_n have_v all_o his_o possession_n there_o with_o he_o at_o that_o time_n but_o only_o the_o spoil_n which_o his_o conquest_n have_v afford_v he_o and_o nothing_o else_o unless_o there_o be_v some_o small_a remainder_n leave_v of_o provision_n which_o he_o have_v carry_v out_o for_o his_o march_n nay_o four_a the_o manner_n of_o pay_v tithe_n be_v not_o ordinary_o thus_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v give_v the_o ten_o of_o all_o his_o possession_n but_o only_o the_o ten_o of_o his_o increase_n much_o less_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v a_o ten_o of_o that_o all_o whensoever_o or_o as_o oft_o foever_o as_o he_o meet_v a_o priest_n but_o only_o at_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n or_o whensoever_o he_o receive_v from_o god_n hand_n any_o kind_n of_o increase_n it_o will_v not_o appear_v reasonable_a that_o abraham_n shall_v at_o this_o time_n pay_v to_o melchisedek_n a_o tithe_n of_o all_o his_o possession_n nor_o indeed_o of_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o he_o have_v now_o reap_v by_o way_n of_o harvest_n that_o be_v of_o the_o increase_n that_o god_n prosper_a hand_n have_v give_v he_o in_o the_o victory_n over_o those_o king_n and_o of_o that_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v here_o say_v he_o present_v the_o tithe_n to_o melchisedek_n and_o have_v do_v that_o and_o allow_v a_o portion_n to_o they_o that_o go_v with_o he_o gen._n 14._o 24._o he_o restore_v all_o the_o rest_n but_o what_o be_v eat_v in_o the_o war_n v_o 24._o to_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n from_o who_o it_o have_v former_o be_v take_v and_o so_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o the_o whole_a tithe_n which_o abraham_n give_v melchisedek_n no_o part_n be_v of_o his_o own_o possession_n but_o only_o of_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n good_n which_o abraham_n have_v take_v as_o lawful_a reprisal_n from_o the_o four_o king_n on_o who_o he_o avenge_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o nephew_n lot_n and_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n former_o conquer_v by_o they_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o it_o still_o stand_v good_a in_o the_o five_o place_n that_o abraham_n do_v pay_v full_a tithe_n and_o that_o of_o the_o choice_a of_o this_o increase_n of_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o spoil_v take_v in_o that_o war_n and_o that_o will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a example_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o custom_n in_o abraham_n time_n of_o pay_v tithe_n to_o the_o priest_n of_o all_o our_o increase_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v though_o that_o this_o be_v pay_v to_o a_o priest_n of_o another_o country_n ver_fw-la 6._o be_v a_o peculiar_a dignity_n and_o honour_n to_o melchisedek_n as_o it_o be_v there_o intimate_v the_o due_a be_v only_o to_o receive_v tithe_n of_o their_o own_o countryman_n ver_fw-la 5._o paraphrase_n 1._o 1._o glaph_n do_fw-mi de_fw-fr abr._n &_o mel●hi_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 5._o people_n according_a to_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o signify_v the_o jew_n that_o people_n call_v oft_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o nation_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o people_n as_o when_o caiaphas_n prophecy_v that_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o one_o man_n shall_v die_v for_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a nation_n perish_v not_o and_o many_o the_o like_a and_o so_o here_o with_o a_o addition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o people_n that_o be_v under_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n that_o be_v punctual_o the_o jew_n and_o this_o be_v more_o probable_a than_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v belong_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tithe_n according_a to_o the_o law_n for_o that_o have_v be_v say_v before_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o have_v commandment_n and_o need_v not_o again_o be_v so_o sudden_o repeat_v and_o second_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v that_o follow_v seem_v to_o set_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o brethren_n as_o a_o interpretation_n of_o what_o go_v immediate_o before_o which_o can_v be_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tithe_n according_a to_o law_n but_o will_v very_o ready_o be_v so_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o people_n according_a to_o law_n in_o this_o notion_n of_o it_o that_o people_n to_o which_o the_o law_n be_v give_v the_o legal_a people_n the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 19_o draw_v nigh_o what_o be_v the_o importance_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v promiscuous_o to_o draw_v nigh_o and_o to_o offer_v from_o it_o come_v the_o ordinary_a word_n corban_n 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o evangelist_n render_v a_o gift_n viz._n that_o which_o be_v present_v and_o consecrate_v to_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o place_n where_o the_o offering_n be_v lay_v up_o be_v also_o call_v by_o that_o name_n 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gift_n luk._n 21._o 4._o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v also_o both_o to_o draw_v nigh_o and_o to_o offer_v from_o the_o first_o notion_n of_o it_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d near_o seem_v to_o be_v derive_v the_o consonant_n or_o radical_o in_o both_o be_v the_o same_o and_o according_o it_o be_v fit_o render_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o draw_v near_o so_o exod._n 19_o 22._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n that_o draw_v nigh_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o leu._n 21._o 21._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o shall_v not_o draw_v nigh_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o this_o and_o the_o other_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v here_o both_o contain_v under_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o draw_v nigh_o which_o be_v here_o answerable_a to_o either_o of_o those_o hebrew_n for_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o here_o that_o we_o by_o our_o high_a priest_n christ_n be_v make_v a_o kind_n of_o priest_n ourselves_o enable_v to_o draw_v nigh_o to_o god_n and_o offer_v up_o ourselves_o to_o he_o to_o present_v our_o body_n to_o he_o a_o live_a sacrifice_n rom._n 12._o 1._o to_o lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 8._o that_o be_v to_o do_v as_o the_o priest_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v this_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a seem_v to_o have_v consider_v when_o he_o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o offer_v to_o offer_v not_o as_o lucas_n brugensis_n conjecture_n as_o if_o he_o have_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o out_o of_o the_o exact_a critical_a notation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o these_o writer_n and_o the_o translator_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 24._o unchangeable_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o signify_v that_o which_o do_v not_o pass_v from_o father_n to_o son_n from_o one_o successor_n to_o another_o be_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transire_fw-la to_o pass_v and_o so_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o atbanasius_n concern_v christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v a_o pontificate_n or_o priesthood_n that_o pass_v not_o away_o or_o do_v not_o go_v by_o succession_n to_o other_o chap._n viii_o 1._o now_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v set_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n paraphrase_n 1._o now_o to_o recapitulate_v all_o that_o we_o have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o christ_n being_n our_o high_a priest_n the_o high_a priest_n the_o high_a priest_n which_o intercede_v for_o we_o christian_n be_v one_o that_o be_v enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o there_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o be_v reign_v there_o have_v all_o power_n give_v unto_o he_o and_o so_o be_v a_o king_n and_o priest_n together_o actual_o bestow_v upon_o we_o all_o
fain_o to_o die_v before_o he_o enter_v heaven_n 21._o and_o have_v a_o high_a priest_n over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n paraphrase_n 21._o and_o have_v one_o that_o intercede_v for_o we_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o that_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o his_o church_n and_o of_o every_o faithful_a servant_n of_o his_o that_o shall_v adhere_v and_o keep_v close_o to_o he_o 22._o 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o pure_a water_n paraphrase_n 22._o let_v we_o serve_v and_o worship_v he_o unfeigned_o be_v fill_v with_o faith_n see_v note_n on_o luc._n 1._o a._n and_o h._n and_o have_v reform_v our_o wicked_a life_n in_o sincere_a resolution_n of_o heart_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o more_o reception_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o at_o god_n hand_n isa_n 1._o 15._o then_o under_o the_o law_n there_o be_v liberty_n to_o come_v into_o the_o congregation_n for_o they_o that_o have_v to_o uched_a any_o impure_a thing_n till_o they_o be_v sprinkle_v with_o water_n by_o the_o priest_n and_o have_v our_o action_n wash_v and_o pure_a also_o 23._o let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n without_o waver_v for_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o promise_v paraphrase_n 23._o let_v not_o all_o the_o affliction_n and_o danger_n that_o can_v approach_v we_o move_v we_o so_o much_o as_o to_o waver_v in_o our_o christian_a profession_n which_o have_v the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n join_v with_o it_o be_v fortification_n enough_o against_o all_o the_o terror_n of_o this_o world_n have_v god_n fidelity_n engage_v to_o make_v good_a the_o promise_n to_o we_o 24._o and_o let_v we_o consider_v one_o another_o to_o provoke_v unto_o love_n and_o unto_o good_a work_n paraphrase_n 24._o and_o let_v we_o weigh_v and_o consider_v all_o advantage_n that_o we_o can_v have_v upon_o one_o another_o to_o provoke_v and_o excite_v one_o another_o to_o charity_n and_o all_o action_n of_o piety_n such_o as_o be_v join_v in_o the_o public_a service_n ver_fw-la 25._o whensoever_o we_o see_v any_o thing_n of_o faint_v or_o grow_v cold_a in_o any_o 25._o not_o forsake_v the_o assemble_v of_o ourselves_o together_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o some_o be_v but_o exhort_v one_o another_o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o you_o see_v the_o a_o day_n approach_v paraphrase_n 25._o and_o not_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o proceed_v so_o far_o towards_o defection_n as_o to_o give_v over_o the_o public_a assembly_n the_o forsake_v of_o which_o be_v not_o only_o desert_v of_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o the_o mean_n of_o growth_n in_o grace_n but_o stir_v up_o one_o another_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o and_o such_o other_o duty_n of_o confession_n towards_o christ_n by_o this_o argument_n among_o other_o that_o now_o their_o deliverance_n from_o the_o persecution_n which_o so_o discourage_v they_o be_v near_o at_o hand_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o jew_n and_o gnostic_n that_o have_v cause_v all_o these_o persecution_n which_o therefore_o will_v make_v it_o unreasonable_a for_o they_o now_o to_o give_v over_o their_o constancy_n and_o lose_v all_o when_o they_o be_v so_o near_o the_o end_n of_o their_o voyage_n see_v rom._n 13._o 11._o and_o jam._n 5._o 7_o 8._o 26._o for_o if_o we_o sin_v wilful_o after_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o remain_v note_n b_o no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n 27._o but_o a_o certain_a fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o 〈◊〉_d fiery_a indignation_n 〈◊〉_d which_o shall_v devour_v the_o adversary_n paraphrase_n 26_o 27._o for_o if_o we_o obstinate_o commit_v such_o a_o sin_n as_o this_o defection_n from_o christ_n and_o forsake_v christianity_n as_o they_o that_o forsake_v the_o public_a assembly_n be_v in_o danger_n to_o do_v after_o once_o receive_v it_o see_v note_n on_o mat._n 12._o h._n there_o be_v no_o plea_n or_o apology_n of_o ignorance_n or_o unwillingness_n for_o that_o and_o consequent_o as_o under_o the_o law_n no_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v for_o such_o nor_o ever_o any_o for_o apostate_n so_o now_o there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o remission_n which_o will_v be_v profitable_a for_o such_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v be_v the_o judgement_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n such_o as_o be_v like_a to_o be_v send_v out_o speedy_o to_o utter_v destruction_n against_o all_o such_o enemy_n of_o christ_n see_v note_n on_o 2_o per._n 3._o g._n and_o heb._n 6._o b._n 28._o he_o that_o despise_a moses_n law_n die_v without_o mercy_n under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n paraphrase_n 28._o he_o that_o offend_v wilful_o and_o so_o capital_o under_o moses_n law_n be_v not_o capable_a there_o of_o any_o mercy_n but_o the_o thing_n be_v prove_v against_o he_o by_o competent_a testimony_n he_o be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 29._o of_o how_o much_o sore_a punishment_n suppose_v you_o shall_v he_o be_v think_v worthy_a who_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherewith_o 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v sanctify_v 〈◊〉_d a_o unholy_a thing_n and_o 〈◊〉_d have_v do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n paraphrase_n 28._o how_o much_o sad_a than_o will_v his_o condition_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v who_o against_o all_o light_n and_o conviction_n receive_v and_o former_o assent_v to_o shall_v thus_o fall_v off_o and_o by_o do_v so_o join_v with_o those_o antichristian_a gnostic_n and_o jew_n the_o crucifier_n of_o christ_n and_o enemy_n of_o christian_n which_o have_v despise_v christ_n as_o vile_a and_o nothing_o worth_a yea_o as_o one_o that_o die_v as_o a_o malefactor_n and_o so_o his_o blood_n no_o better_o then_o unclean_a profane_a blood_n not_o such_o as_o will_v bring_v any_o benefit_n to_o we_o as_o it_o be_v design_v to_o do_v and_o scorn_v and_o reject_v the_o gospel_n itself_o reveal_v to_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n authorize_v thereto_o by_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o spirit_n on_o they_o and_o other_o mercy_n in_o it_o so_o gracious_o bestow_v on_o we_o 30._o for_o we_o know_v he_o that_o have_v say_v vengeance_n belong_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v recompense_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o again_o the_o lord_n shall_v judge_v his_o people_n paraphrase_n 30._o for_o we_o know_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o say_v vengeance_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o psal_n 135._o 14._o that_o god_n will_v avenge_v his_o people_n his_o church_n and_o consequent_o will_v avenge_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o which_o now_o suffer_v among_o you_o against_o their_o persecutor_n in_o his_o time_n if_o you_o can_v patient_o wait_v for_o it_o 31._o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n paraphrase_n 31._o to_o which_o purpose_n you_o may_v be_v arm_v with_o this_o consideration_n that_o it_o be_v not_o near_o so_o formidable_a a_o thing_n to_o be_v persecute_v and_o punish_v by_o mortal_a man_n as_o by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o see_v mat._n 10._o 20._o 32._o but_o call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o former_a day_n in_o which_o after_o you_o be_v illuminate_v you_o endure_v a_o great_a 〈◊〉_d ●ight_n of_o affliction_n paraphrase_n 32._o now_o that_o the_o be_v persecute_v for_o christianity_n shall_v bring_v you_o to_o this_o defection_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n consider_v how_o when_o you_o do_v first_o receive_v the_o faith_n see_v rom._n 13._o 11._o you_o endure_v affliction_n courageous_o and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o now_o at_o last_o to_o fail_v in_o any_o reason_n lest_o you_o lose_v the_o fruit_n of_o all_o that_o 33._o partly_o while_o you_o be_v make_v a_o gazingstock_n both_o by_o reproach_n and_o affliction_n and_o partly_o 〈◊〉_d while_o you_o become_v companion_n of_o they_o that_o be_v so_o use_v paraphrase_n 33._o suffer_v most_o courageous_o and_o notorious_o yourselves_o and_o show_v your_o fellow-feeling_n and_o common_a concernment_n with_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o afflict_v 34._o for_o you_o have_v 〈◊〉_d compassion_n of_o i_o in_o my_o bond_n and_o take_v joyful_o the_o spoil_n of_o your_o good_n 〈◊〉_d know_v in_o yourselves_o that_o you_o have_v 〈◊〉_d in_o heaven_n a_o better_a and_o a_o endure_a substance_n paraphrase_n 34._o for_o first_o to_o the_o latter_a of_o they_o see_v note_n on_o mat._n 7._o ●_o you_o express_v your_o sense_n of_o my_o suffering_n and_o perhaps_o of_o many_o other_o that_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n imprison_v in_o mourn_v for_o i_o and_o relieve_v i_o and_o for_o the_o former_a you_o part_v with_o your_o worldly_a wealth_n which_o be_v violent_o tear_v from_o
6._o 3._o in_o their_o body_n unprofitable_o 20._o which_o 〈◊〉_d sometime_o be_v note_v g_o disobedient_a 〈◊〉_d when_o once_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v wherein_o few_o that_o be_v eight_o 〈◊〉_d person_n be_v d._n save_v by_o water_n paraphrase_n 20._o those_o man_n i_o say_v at_o that_o time_n which_o live_v in_o all_o uncleanness_n believe_v not_o the_o preach_n of_o noah_n nor_o heed_v his_o building_n the_o ark_n by_o which_o yet_o it_o be_v clear_a there_o shall_v be_v a_o deluge_n and_o very_o few_o escape_n or_o be_v save_v in_o it_o when_o god_n give_v they_o that_o fair_a and_o merciful_a warning_n and_o call_v to_o repentance_n 21._o now●_n note_v h_o the_o like_a figure_n whereunto_o even_o baptism_n do_v also_o save_v we_o 〈◊〉_d not_o the_o put_v away_o of_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n paraphrase_n 21._o to_o all_o which_o we_o have_v now_o the_o direct_a parallel_n as_o in_o the_o violence_n such_o as_o gen._n 6._o 11._o the_o wicked_a devour_a and_o persecute_v the_o righteous_a and_o in_o the_o gnostick_n pollution_n answerable_a to_o the_o corrupt_a themselves_o before_o god_n v_o 12._o an_o effect_n of_o what_o be_v do_v v_o 2._o so_o in_o god_n warning_n and_o denounce_v of_o judgement_n and_o show_v a_o way_n to_o the_o righteous_a that_o stick_n close_o to_o he_o to_o escape_v to_o wit_n the_o renounce_n of_o those_o heathen_a sin_n note_v by_o baptism_n that_o antitype_n to_o the_o ark_n in_o the_o water_n keep_v man_n safe_a from_o be_v drown_v i_o mean_v not_o that_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n alone_o which_o be_v but_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o body_n but_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o initiation_n the_o seek_v to_o god_n as_o to_o the_o oracle_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o whole_a future_a life_n see_v note_n on_o rom._n 10._o f._n and_o the_o undertake_n faithful_o to_o perform_v those_o direction_n deliver_v first_o out_n of_o the_o deluge_n of_o sin_n and_o then_o of_o destruction_n attend_v it_o and_o this_o i_o say_v as_o a_o eminent_a effect_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n who_o rise_v on_o purpose_n to_o turn_v all_o that_o will_v be_v wrought_v on_o from_o their_o iniquity_n act._n 3._o 26._o and_o so_o bring_v destruction_n and_o vengeance_n on_o all_o other_o 22._o 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v go_v into_o heaven_n and_o be_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n angel_n and_o authority_n and_o power_n be_v make_v subject_a unto_o he_o paraphrase_n 22._o who_o since_o that_o resurrection_n be_v now_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n to_o undertake_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o thing_n all_o power_n both_o of_o angel_n and_o man_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o subdue_v and_o bring_v down_o the_o disobedient_a of_o both_o sort_n the_o very_a devil_n and_o the_o heathen_a persecuter_n as_o the_o villainy_n and_o violence_n of_o the_o old_a world_n be_v bring_v dòw_v by_o god_n in_o the_o deluge_n so_o far_o at_o least_o that_o whatever_o befall_v we_o from_o they_o shall_v be_v rather_o to_o our_o advantage_n then_o otherwise_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n the_o apostle_n have_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n v_o 17._o and_o be_v now_o resume_v and_o proceed_v in_o c._n 4._o 1._o annotation_n on_o chap._n iii_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 4._o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o phrase_n make_v up_o of_o two_o hebraism_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hide_a or_o secret_a of_o the_o heart_n be_v a_o hebrew_n form_n of_o speech_n as_o when_o psal_n 51._o 8._o the_o original_a have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o clauso_fw-la secret_o thou_o have_v make_v wisdom_n know_v to_o i_o the_o targum_fw-la read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o hide_a of_o the_o heart_n that_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v hide_v then_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hide_a man_n that_o be_v by_o the_o same_o analogy_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o old_a man_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o new_a man_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o new_a creature_n as_o they_o signify_v continue_v in_o sin_n and_o renovation_n of_o life_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o inner_a man_n that_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n opposite_a to_o the_o carnal_a or_o sensitive_a appetite_n &_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o than_o its_o opposition_n to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o outward_a etc._n etc._n v._n 3._o will_v enforce_v viz._n the_o inward_a invisible_a accomplishment_n or_o beauty_n of_o the_o heart_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o poet_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behaviour_n not_o golden_a ornament_n be_v the_o set_v out_o of_o a_o woman_n 〈◊〉_d ib._n not_o corruptible_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d incorruptible_a here_o may_v signify_v as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d incorruptiblenesse_n eph._n 6._o 24._o the_o durableness_n and_o constancy_n of_o the_o virtue_n speak_v of_o that_o will_v not_o be_v corrupt_v or_o debauch_v by_o any_o temptation_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o this_o proceed_n from_o the_o sincerity_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o affection_n at_o the_o present_a which_o be_v likely_a to_o make_v it_o durable_a as_o in_o nature_n the_o more_o simple_a and_o uncompounded_a thing_n be_v the_o less_o they_o be_v corruptible_a whereas_o the_o double_a principle_n render_v every_o thing_n the_o more_o liable_a to_o corruption_n and_o therefore_o the_o scholiast_n on_o homer_n give_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o plague_n come_v in_o the_o army_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d seized_z first_o upon_o the_o mule_n which_o be_v a_o mix_v species_n make_v up_o of_o the_o horse_n and_o the_o ass_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o such_o creature_n say_v he_o be_v most_o subject_a to_o corruption_n and_o infection_n of_o all_o other_o but_o another_o notion_n there_o be_v of_o which_o the_o phrase_n be_v capable_a in_o opposition_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d gold_n chain_n and_o ornament_n v._n 3._o for_o those_o though_o precious_a be_v corruptible_a and_o therefore_o ch_n 1._o 8._o silver_n and_o gold_n be_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d corruptible_a thing_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o those_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o incorruptible_a etc._n etc._n will_v here_o signify_v that_o incorruptible_a ornament_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n so_o much_o more_o valuable_a than_o gold_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 7._o according_a to_o knowledge_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o knowledge_n do_v here_o more_o probable_o denote_v that_o knowledge_n of_o duty_n by_o which_o a_o christian_n life_n and_o action_n must_v be_v direct_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o hugo_n grotius_n who_o apply_v to_o this_o sense_n those_o other_o place_n rom._n 15._o 14._o fill_v with_o all_o knowledge_n able_a to_o instruct_v other_o and_o 1_o cor._n 1._o 5._o enrich_v in_o all_o knowledge_n and_o 2_o cor._n 6._o b._n in_o purity_n and_o in_o knowledge_n to_o this_o it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v sit_v to_o add_v what_o have_v be_v note_v 1_o cor._n 1._o note_n c._n and_o will_v again_o be_v enlarge_v on_o 2_o pet._n 1._o c._n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d knowledge_n have_v a_o critical_a notion_n in_o these_o book_n for_o a_o special_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 8._o viz._n that_o sort_n of_o christian_a knowledge_n which_o consist_v in_o explain_v of_o parable_n or_o mysterious_a expression_n in_o scripture_n and_o that_o may_v be_v thus_o appliable_a to_o this_o place_n the_o duty_n of_o the_o husband_n towards_o the_o wife_n be_v best_a to_o be_v learn_v from_o the_o mystical_a explication_n of_o the_o word_n and_o story_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n gen._n 1._o 27._o god_n create_v they_o male_a and_o female_a and_o bless_v they_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o be_v fruitful_a and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n and_o subdue_v it_o and_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n and_o over_o every_o live_a thing_n that_o move_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o god_n say_v behold_v i_o have_v give_v you_o every_o herb_n bear_v seed_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o every_o tree_n in_o the_o which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o tree_n yield_v seed_n to_o you_o
this_o s._n luke_n more_o particular_o mention_n 〈◊〉_d c._n 9_o 31._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o speak_v of_o his_o exodus_fw-la which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o perform_v at_o jerusalem_n what_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v have_v there_o be_v say_v see_v note_n on_o luc._n 9_o b._n viz._n christ_n go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n as_o moses_n go_v out_o of_o egypt_n heb._n 11._o 22._o which_o one_o story_n give_v that_o title_n of_o exodus_fw-la to_o that_o second_o book_n of_o moses_n so_o call_v and_o to_o this_o be_v that_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n resemble_v judas_n 5._o being_n attend_v first_o with_o the_o destruction_n as_o of_o the_o egyptian_n there_o the_o oppressor_n of_o he_o and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o after_o of_o the_o israelite_n themselves_o that_o believe_v not_o judas_n 5._o so_o of_o the_o jew_n here_o the_o crucifier_n of_o christ_n and_o persecuter_n of_o christian_n and_o withal_o of_o all_o vicious_a abominable_a christian_a professor_n that_o turn_v the_o gospel_n into_o licentiousness_n and_o second_o with_o the_o deliverance_n of_o god_n people_n as_o there_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n so_o here_o of_o all_o the_o true_a israelite_n the_o faithful_a disciple_n of_o christ_n that_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o in_o despite_n of_o persecuter_n and_o seducer_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o as_o moses_n be_v their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d saviour_n or_o deliverer_n and_o a_o god_n of_o vengeance_n to_o pharaoh_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o saviour_n be_v say_v to_o judge_n obad._n 21._o so_o be_v this_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o come_v both_o of_o a_o king_n and_o of_o a_o saviour_n to_o destroy_v enemy_n and_o deliver_v friend_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o elias_n and_o moses_n discourse_n with_o christ_n at_o which_o s._n peter_n himself_o be_v present_a &_o by_o those_o very_a person_n somewhat_o be_v adumbrate_v also_o elias_n be_v he_o that_o call_v for_o fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o consume_v and_o moses_n he_o that_o thus_o deliver_v the_o israelite_n cut_v of_o egypt_n s._n peter_n here_o may_v very_o well_o mention_v it_o as_o a_o demonstrative_a evidence_n by_o which_o he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o this_o power_n and_o come_n v_o 16._o that_o be_v this_o powerful_a regal_a come_n of_o christ_n that_o now_o we_o speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 17._o receive_v what_o be_v mean_v here_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d receive_v from_o god_n the_o father_n honour_n and_o glory_n will_v easy_o be_v guess_v both_o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v note_n e._n and_o especial_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d majesty_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v eye-witness_n for_o this_o verse_n be_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o annex_v as_o a_o proof_n to_o the_o former_a it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n which_o christ_n receive_v here_o v_o 17._o be_v that_o majesty_n which_o they_o see_v v_o 16._o that_o sure_o signify_v the_o dignity_n royal_a that_o there_o by_o way_n of_o vision_n or_o prophecy_n he_o be_v instate_v in_o this_o commission_n send_v he_o from_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o two_o great_a man_n moses_n and_o elias_n who_o also_o talk_v with_o he_o on_o this_o subject_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o shall_v befall_v he_o first_o in_o his_o passage_n to_o this_o kingdom_n and_o then_o how_o it_o shall_v be_v exercise_v by_o he_o upon_o his_o crucifier_n and_o then_o this_o must_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o receive_a honour_n and_o glory_n here_o that_o be_v this_o kingdom_n be_v thus_o in_o vision_n instate_v on_o he_o a_o solemnity_n of_o which_o be_v that_o which_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o or_o such_o a_o voice_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o or_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o magnificent_a glory_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o bright_a shine_a cloud_n see_v note_n on_o mat._n 3._o c._n that_o appear_v in_o that_o vision_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n signify_v god_n purpose_n of_o rule_v the_o world_n by_o he_o devolve_v the_o government_n of_o all_o upon_o he_o some_o place_n of_o mistake_n here_o may_v be_v by_o confound_v together_o this_o solemnity_n and_o this_o majesty_n from_o thence_o imagine_v that_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d honour_n and_o glory_n which_o he_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d but_o this_o be_v a_o mistake_n it_o be_v first_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n here_o mention_v of_o this_o vision_n one_o the_o object_n of_o their_o sight_n of_o which_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eye-witness_n the_o other_o of_o their_o hear_n or_o which_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o hear_v and_o the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v in_o several_a phrase_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d majesty_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d honour_n and_o glory_n that_o be_v vest_v on_o he_o the_o latter_a the_o proclamation_n as_o it_o be_v before_o he_o when_o in_o vision_n he_o enter_v on_o this_o office_n and_o of_o this_o it_o it_o say_v ver_fw-la 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o voice_n also_o we_o hear_v as_o before_o they_o have_v see_v the_o majesty_n or_o honour_n and_o glory_n make_v these_o two_o disparate_a thing_n as_o the_o lightning_n and_o the_o thunder_n the_o one_o to_o the_o eye_n the_o other_o to_o the_o ear_n but_o both_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n the_o argument_n or_o subject_n here_o in_o hand_n the_o kingdom_n which_o christ_n have_v at_o his_o resurrection_n enter_v on_o and_o shall_v now_o short_o actual_o exercise_v it_o in_o the_o destroy_n of_o his_o crucifier_n 〈◊〉_d that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o in_o the_o nominative_a have_v no_o verb_n follow_v to_o govern_v it_o be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o these_o hebraize_v writer_n and_o in_o the_o construction_n must_v be_v set_v as_o if_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o genitive_a take_v absolute_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 19_o daystar_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d day_n for_o christ_n come_v in_o vengeance_n on_o his_o crucifier_n have_v be_v interpret_v former_o see_v note_n on_o heb._n 10._o a._n rom._n 13._o 12._o 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o most_o particular_o here_o it_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o shine_a forth_o of_o that_o day_n that_o have_v be_v before_o but_o obscure_o prophesy_v of_o then_o for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o know_a star_n 〈◊〉_d which_o as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o harbinger_n to_o the_o day_n or_o sun_n usher_v he_o into_o our_o hemisphere_n proportionable_a to_o this_o be_v the_o particular_a remarkable_a passage_n which_o christ_n foretell_v as_o the_o immediate_a harbinger_n before_o this_o come_n of_o his_o such_o as_o be_v mention_v luc._n 21._o 28._o which_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o appear_v then_o say_v he_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n take_v comfort_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d or_o because_o your_o redemption_n draw_v near_o and_o so_o the_o lucifer_n or_o morningstar_n shall_v signify_v the_o immediate_a forerunner_n of_o this_o day_n which_o till_o it_o come_v they_o must_v content_v themselves_o with_o the_o dark_a prophecy_n and_o sustain_v themselves_o by_o that_o mean_n and_o if_o the_o addition_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o your_o heart_n wherein_o the_o phosphorus_n be_v say_v to_o arise_v be_v think_v to_o resist_v this_o interpretation_n the_o account_n of_o that_o be_v ready_a first_o that_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o phosphorus_n here_o not_o be_v literal_o to_o be_v understand_v be_v by_o this_o addition_n very_o fit_o confine_v to_o the_o metaphorical_a notation_n in_o our_o heart_n be_v oppose_v to_o in_o the_o heaven_n second_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o practical_a judgement_n by_o which_o we_o ponder_v and_o consider_v this_o morningstar_n signify_v the_o forerunner_n of_o that_o eminent_a famous_a day_n will_v then_o be_v say_v to_o arise_v in_o our_o heart_n when_o we_o by_o consideration_n of_o the_o prediction_n come_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o they_o as_o such_o as_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o story_n say_v to_o have_v do_v when_o see_v the_o roman_a army_n to_o have_v begird_v jerusalem_n they_o from_o thence_o conclude_v according_a to_o christ_n word_n that_o the_o destruction_n thereof_o be_v nigh_o and_o thereupon_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o siege_n be_v raise_v they_o flee_v out_o of_o the_o city_n to_o pella_n and_o there_o continue_v 〈◊〉_d v._o 20._o interpretation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o agonistical_a word_n to_o signify_v the_o
notion_n of_o these_o word_n which_o i_o therefore_o prefer_v before_o any_o other_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 8._o dignity_n what_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v in_o this_o place_n and_o the_o parallel_n of_o s._n peter_n 2_o pet._n 2._o 10._o be_v a_o little_a uncertain_a though_o it_o be_v literal_o render_v glory_n in_o the_o abstract_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o it_o denote_v the_o person_n the_o subject_n of_o that_o glory_n or_o greatness_n in_o the_o concrete_a as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d power_n rom._n 13._o 1._o signify_v ruler_n or_o man_n in_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o pet._n 2._o 10._o those_o in_o who_o dominion_n be_v vest_v but_o whether_o these_o be_v man_n or_o angel_n be_v not_o so_o clear_a that_o they_o be_v angel_n be_v make_v probable_a by_o these_o argument_n first_o because_o the_o appearance_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v ordinary_o express_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o appearance_n of_o they_o be_v visible_a in_o bright_a shine_a cloud_n as_o have_v oft_o be_v say_v and_o so_o agreeable_o angel_n in_o the_o plural_a or_o the_o order_n or_o hierarchy_n of_o angel_n consider_v together_o may_v be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d glory_n that_o be_v those_o glorious_a creature_n that_o attend_v and_o wait_v on_o god_n second_o it_o be_v observable_a col._n 2._o 8._o that_o the_o a_o postle_n speak_v of_o angel_n use_v the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o that_o be_v man_n have_v not_o see_v express_v the_o angel_n by_o that_o periphrasis_n those_o that_o be_v invisible_a spirit_n never_o see_v nor_o consequent_o particular_o know_v by_o any_o man_n creature_n above_o we_o out_o of_o our_o reach_n and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n this_o apostle_n here_o speak_v more_o of_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d glory_n ver_fw-la 10._o express_v they_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v not_o and_o 2_o pet._n 2._o 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o which_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o which_o be_v a_o expression_n direct_o parallel_v to_o that_o other_o use_v by_o s._n paul_n of_o angel_n three_o because_o of_o other_o dominion_n their_o contempt_n have_v be_v set_v down_o before_o both_o in_o s._n peter_n and_o here_o by_o the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d set_v at_o nought_o make_v nothing_o of_o and_o despise_v scornful_o behave_v themselves_o towards_o their_o superior_n and_o so_o need_v not_o be_v repeat_v again_o in_o these_o word_n but_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o what_o be_v before_o say_v of_o their_o set_a dominion_n at_o nought_o may_v refer_v to_o their_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n or_o their_o not_o be_v subject_n to_o any_o ruler_n or_o master_n which_o be_v note_v in_o they_o 1_o tim._n 6._o 1._o and_o then_o this_o of_o their_o practice_n superstruct_v on_o that_o doctrine_n their_o speak_v contumelious_o of_o those_o that_o exercise_v that_o dominion_n may_v be_v fit_a enough_o to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o former_a and_o so_o may_v be_v set_v down_o in_o that_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o speak_v evil_a of_o glory_n and_o that_o it_o do_v so_o signify_v be_v most_o probable_a first_o because_o we_o find_v not_o in_o any_o church-writer_n that_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o gnostic_n have_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o of_o particular_a opposition_n or_o defiance_n to_o angel_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o aeones_n note_v the_o angel_n make_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o divinity_n a_o second_o argument_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o gainsay_n of_o core_n whereby_o this_o sin_n of_o these_o gnostic_n be_v exemplify_v ver_n 〈◊〉_d 11._o where_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d contradict_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d evil_a speak_v be_v of_o the_o same_o importance_n so_o we_o know_v the_o sin_n of_o core_n consist_v in_o the_o murmur_a and_o rebel_n against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n that_o be_v by_o god_n set_v over_o they_o and_o for_o thus_o do_v the_o gnostic_n be_v 2_o tim._n 3._o distinct_o compare_v to_o janne_n and_o jambres_n the_o egyptian_a magician_n and_o such_o be_v simon_n and_o menander_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o these_o who_o by_o their_o sorcery_n resist_v moses_n come_v in_o god_n name_n to_o the_o israelite_n and_o to_o pharaoh_n as_o these_o do_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o this_o will_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o phrase_n speak_v ill_o of_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o they_o that_o be_v contumelious_a usage_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 23._o with_o who_o particular_o they_o have_v many_o controversy_n and_o disputation_n refer_v to_o ver_fw-la 9_o in_o which_o those_o contumelious_a speech_n on_o the_o gnostic_n part_n will_v be_v but_o effect_n of_o their_o great_a dare_a pride_n mention_v 2_o pet._n 2._o 10._o immediate_o before_o it_o and_o of_o their_o discriminate_a themselves_o from_o all_o other_o v_o 19_o and_o so_o be_v very_o probable_a to_o have_v be_v observable_a and_o accusable_a in_o they_o see_v note_n on_o the_o title_n of_o 2_o john_n a._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 9_o body_n of_o moses_n what_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n here_o signify_v will_v easy_o be_v discern_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o this_o controversy_n of_o the_o angel_n with_o the_o devil_n be_v here_o cite_v and_o that_o be_v undoubted_o zach._n 3_o 1._o there_o we_o have_v joshua_n the_o highpriest_n stand_v before_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o satan_n stand_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o resist_v he_o or_o dispute_v or_o plead_v against_o he_o as_o the_o stand_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n note_v a_o accuser_n impleading_a another_o let_v satan_n stand_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n '_o psal_n 109._o and_o the_o only_a word_n which_o be_v there_o mention_v from_o the_o angel_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o satan_n be_v these_o here_o set_v down_o 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o now_o the_o matter_n of_o controversy_n then_o between_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o devil_n the_o good_a and_o bad_a angel_n be_v that_o which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o that_o present_a vision_n the_o re-edify_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o restore_v of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n among_o the_o jew_n at_o jerusalem_n this_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o jew_n 2_o mac._n 15._o 12._o where_o we_o have_v onias_n pray_v for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o may_v as_o fit_o be_v style_v the_o body_n of_o moses_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o assemble_v of_o christian_n for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 20_o 25_o 27._o eph._n 1._o 23._o and_o 4._o 12_o 16._o col._n 1._o 18._o jam._n 3._o 2._o the_o judaical_a temple_n and_o worship_n and_o service_n depend_v upon_o moses_n as_o the_o lawgiver_n or_o principle_n or_o head_n under_o god_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v as_o christ_n be_v the_o lawgiver_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o institute_v apostle_n etc._n etc._n in_o it_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o that_o and_o the_o church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o know_v he_o call_v his_o body_n a_o temple_n destroy_v this_o temple_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o apostle_n of_o we_o that_o our_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n agreeable_a hereunto_o it_o be_v that_o all_o christian_n as_o they_o live_v together_o in_o public_a communion_n congregate_a together_o in_o assembly_n be_v call_v in_o reference_n to_o this_o notion_n of_o body_n member_n and_o fellow-member_n and_o the_o restore_v the_o congregation_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v note_n on_o 2_o cor._n 13._o c._n and_o ephes_n 4._o 12._o and_o so_o in_o ignatius_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n he_o talk_v of_o congratulate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o syria_n because_o they_o be_v in_o peace_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o body_n be_v restore_v to_o they_o where_o their_o restitution_n to_o the_o free_a public_a service_n of_o god_n such_o as_o here_o joshua_n and_o zerubbabel_n be_v foretell_v to_o labour_v for_o and_o satan_n to_o labour_v against_o and_o the_o archangel_n to_o contend_v with_o he_o about_o it_o be_v express_v by_o the_o restore_n
or_o with_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n etc._n etc._n he_o exhibit_v himself_o see_v dan._n 7._o 13._o and_o all_o man_n shall_v discern_v his_o particular_a hand_n in_o these_o judgement_n and_o all_o that_o have_v to_o do_v in_o the_o crucify_a of_o he_o and_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n whether_o at_o jerusalem_n or_o wheresoever_o scatter_v see_v the_o premonition_n and_o mat._n 24._o b._n shall_v discern_v that_o these_o judgement_n be_v inflict_v on_o they_o for_o their_o crucify_a of_o christ_n and_o persecute_v christian_n and_o shall_v see_v what_o cause_n they_o have_v to_o lament_v for_o their_o cruel_a usage_n of_o they_o which_o now_o light_v so_o heavy_a upon_o themselves_o 8._o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n say_v the_o lord_n 4._o which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o 〈◊〉_d almighty_a paraphrase_n 8._o the_o first_o and_o last_o letter_n of_o the_o greek_a alphabet_n be_v a_o description_n of_o i_o say_v christ_n who_o be_o before_o and_o after_o all_o thing_n and_o so_o he_o who_o kingdom_n have_v no_o beginning_n nor_o end_n and_o be_o able_a to_o secure_v all_o faithful_a servant_n of_o i_o and_o to_o subdue_v and_o destroy_v my_o enemy_n and_o now_o mean_a to_o evidence_n some_o of_o my_o royal_a power_n in_o punish_v my_o enemy_n or_o ill_a subject_n 9_o i_o john_n who_o also_o be_o your_o brother_n and_o companion_n in_o tribulation_n and_o in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o patience_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o isle_n that_o be_v call_v patmos_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n paraphrase_n 9_o i_o john_n who_o write_v this_o epistle_n to_o you_o and_o who_o with_o other_o the_o faithful_a christian_a jew_n have_v suffer_v persecution_n and_o do_v still_o hold_v out_o constant_a and_o patient_a through_o the_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o now_o reign_v though_o once_o he_o suffer_v not_o permit_v any_o temptation_n to_o shake_v my_o faith_n or_o drive_v i_o from_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n be_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o patmos_n banish_v thither_o for_o preach_v and_o promulgate_a the_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v v._n 2._o note_v a._n 10._o i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o hear_v behind_o i_o a_o great_a voice_n as_o of_o a_o trumpet_n paraphrase_n 10._o and_o be_v there_o exclude_v from_o the_o society_n of_o man_n i_o be_v vouchafe_v by_o god_n to_o receive_v revelation_n from_o he_o and_o according_o i_o fall_v into_o a_o ecstasy_n or_o transportation_n on_o the_o resurrection_n day_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n either_o the_o annual_a or_o the_o weekly_a festivity_n set_v apart_o to_o commemorate_v his_o resurrection_n and_o as_o upon_o a_o festivity_n i_o hear_a the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n psal_n 47._o 5._o or_o a_o voice_n as_o loud_o as_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o that_o voice_n behind_o i_o be_v 30._o 21._o calling_n to_o i_o unexpected_o 11._o say_v i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o and_o what_o thou_o see_v write_v in_o a_o book_n and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o seven_o church_n which_o be_v in_o asia_n unto_o ephesus_n and_o unto_o smyrna_n and_o unto_o pergamos_n and_o unto_o thyatira_n and_o unto_o sardis_n and_o unto_o philadelphia_n and_o unto_o laodicea_n paraphrase_n 11._o and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v be_v that_o he_o that_o sp●ke_v to_o i_o be_v the_o eternal_a god_n and_o that_o i_o be_v command_v by_o he_o to_o write_v down_o what_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v at_o this_o or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n show_v i_o and_o to_o send_v all_o together_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o asia_n of_o which_o ephesus_n be_v the_o chief_a metropolis_n which_o according_o now_o i_o do_v 12._o and_o i_o turn_v to_o see_v the_o voice_n that_o speak_v with_o i_o and_o be_v turn_v i_o see_v seven_o golden_a candlestick_n paraphrase_n 12._o and_o hear_v the_o voice_n behind_o i_o i_o turn_v to_o see_v who_o it_o be_v from_o whence_o this_o voice_n come_v to_o i_o and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n of_o turn_v there_o appear_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o vision_n the_o representation_n in_o symbol_n or_o visible_a hieroglyphic_n of_o what_o that_o voice_n v_o 11._o say_v unto_o i_o to_o signify_v the_o seven_o church_n appear_v seven_o golden_a candlestick_n 13._o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n one_o like_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n clothe_v with_o a_o garment_n down_o to_o the_o foot_n and_o gird_v about_o the_o pap_n with_o a_o golden_a girdle_n paraphrase_n 13._o to_o signify_v christ_n that_o eternal_a god_n that_o speak_v to_o i_o and_o say_v i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n there_o appear_v a_o angel_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o candlestick_n like_o he_o describe_v dan._n 10._o 5._o in_o a_o very_a solemn_a manner_n habit_v like_o the_o high_a priest_n levit._n 6._o 12._o and_o 16._o 4._o to_o signify_v christ_n our_o merciful_a high_a priest_n who_o have_v compassion_n on_o our_o infirmity_n and_o intercede_v and_o pray_v for_o we_o to_o be_v represent_v by_o this_o angel_n in_o a_o upper_a garment_n long_o such_o as_o he_o use_v to_o wear_v see_v note_n on_o mat._n 5._o 6._o and_o gird_v with_o a_o girdle_n as_o he_o be_v too_o and_o that_o of_o gold_n as_o rev._n 15._o 6._o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n the_o curious_a girdle_n of_o who_o ephod_n be_v of_o gold_n blue_a purple_a scarlet_a and_o fine_a twine_v linen_n exod._n 39_o 5._o and_o by_o that_o intermixture_n of_o gold_n discriminate_v from_o the_o girdle_n of_o ordinary_a priest_n see_v note_n on_o luk._n 12._o b._n and_o this_o belt_n or_o girdle_n gird_v about_o the_o pap_n 14_o 15._o his_o head_n and_o his_o hair_n be_v white_a 〈◊〉_d like_o wool_n 〈◊〉_d as_o white_a as_o snow_n and_o his_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n paraphrase_n 14._o and_o his_o appearance_n from_o head_n to_o foot_n be_v like_o a_o flame_a fire_n nothing_o his_o come_n to_o do_v vengeance_n to_o consume_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o presence_n 2_o thess_n 2._o 8._o and_o his_o voice_n be_v like_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o great_a many_o water_n meet_v together_o or_o of_o a_o multitude_n dan._n 10._o 6._o make_v a_o huge_a terrible_a roar_a noise_n 15._o and_o his_o foot_n like_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d note_n f_o fine_a brass_n as_o if_o they_o burn_v in_o a_o furnace_n and_o his_o voice_n as_o the_o sound_n of_o many_o water_n 16._o and_o 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n seven_o star_n and_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v a_o sharp_a two-edged_a sword_n and_o his_o countenance_n be_v as_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o his_o strength_n paraphrase_n 16._o and_o he_o hold_v seven_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n signify_v his_o approbation_n and_o care_n of_o the_o seven_o singular_a governor_n which_o be_v place_v in_o those_o seven_o church_n represent_v by_o the_o candlestick_n and_o there_o come_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o tongue_n or_o word_n a_o sword_n of_o such_o a_o kind_a as_o betoken_v sudden_a destruction_n and_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v by_o his_o look_n which_o be_v the_o resemblance_n of_o the_o sun_n when_o it_o shine_v in_o its_o great_a brightness_n 17._o and_o when_o i_o see_v he_o i_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n as_o dead_a and_o he_o lay_v his_o right_a hand_n upon_o i_o say_v unto_o i_o fear_v not_o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o paraphrase_n 17._o and_o when_o i_o see_v christ_n thus_o represent_v the_o terr●blenesse_n of_o the_o vision_n and_o christ_n appearance_n in_o it_o be_v such_o that_o it_o put_v i_o into_o a_o faint_a fit_n see_v dan._n 10._o 8._o but_o he_o hold_v i_o up_o and_o encourage_v i_o not_o to_o fear_v but_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o as_o the_o eternal_a god_n who_o will_v certain_o do_v i_o no_o hurt_n how_o terrible_a soever_o he_o prove_v to_o his_o enemy_n put_v i_o in_o mind_n who_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n though_o vilify_v and_o crucify_v upon_o the_o earth_n which_o crucify_a of_o he_o and_o proceed_v in_o like_a manner_n with_o his_o servant_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o become_v now_o to_o punish_v and_o therefore_o there_o will_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o fear_n but_o much_o rather_o of_o comfort_n and_o joy_n to_o any_o faithful_a christian_a 18._o i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o behold_v i_o be_o alive_a for_o evermore_o amen_n and_o have_v the_o key_n of_o 〈◊〉_d hell_n and_o death_n paraphrase_n 18._o even_o that_o christ_n which_o live_v here_o on_o earth_n and_o be_v
be_v god_n bydel_n that_o be_v messenger_n or_o officer_n see_v s_o t_o hen._n spelman_n '_o s_o glossary_a in_o the_o word_n bedellus_fw-la this_o title_n be_v give_v to_o the_o chief_a priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n particular_o in_o malachi_n for_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n or_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o lip_n therefore_o be_v to_o preserve_v knowledge_n and_o from_o thence_o as_o from_o the_o oracle_n the_o people_n be_v to_o require_v the_o law_n to_o receive_v knowledge_n and_o direction_n for_o their_o duty_n these_o angel_n be_v by_o ancient_a writer_n know_v and_o affirm_v to_o be_v bishop_n one_o in_o every_o of_o those_o see_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o metropolitan_o to_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o adjacent_a city_n be_v subordinate_a see_v note_v b._n and_o this_o course_n of_o government_n be_v here_o own_a and_o approve_v by_o christ_n himself_o by_o his_o send_v those_o message_n to_o those_o angel_n in_o these_o church_n and_o by_o his_o hold_v the_o star_n which_o resemble_v they_o in_o his_o right_a hand_n v_o 10._o &_o ch_n 2._o 1._o while_o he_o visit_v or_o walk_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o candlestick_n or_o church_n as_o for_o mr._n brightman_n only_a argument_n to_o the_o contrary_a because_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o many_o bishop_n or_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o 17_o 28._o that_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n be_v the_o man_n understand_v in_o that_o place_n who_o meet_v paul_n at_o miletus_n but_o that_o they_o be_v episcopi_fw-la ephesi_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n be_v a_o direct_a falsification_n of_o he_o there_o be_v no_o such_o phrase_n use_v in_o that_o place_n and_o for_o that_o one_o objection_n which_o by_o some_o be_v draw_v against_o their_o be_v single_a person_n because_o ch_z 2._o 24._o after_o speak_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o thyatira_n it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o you_o and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v in_o thyatira_n as_o if_o the_o angel_n before_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o here_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v easy_a if_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o ancient_a greek_a mss._n particular_o that_o at_o s._n james_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v leave_v out_o and_o the_o word_n read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o you_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o you_o that_o be_v in_o thyatira_n and_o who_o have_v not_o know_v the_o depth_n as_o they_o call_v they_o but_o those_o depth_n of_o satan_n etc._n etc._n where_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o the_o rest_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o you_o be_v set_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o gnostick_n comply_v party_n among_o they_o before_o mention_v and_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n but_o as_o one_o and_o the_o prime_n of_o that_o pure_a constant_a party_n i_o need_v add_v no_o more_o for_o answer_n to_o this_o so_o slight_a a_o objection_n these_o angel_n be_v here_o describe_v by_o the_o hieroglyphic_n of_o star_n 〈◊〉_d in_o token_n of_o their_o office_n to_o illuminate_v and_o send_v out_o influence_n to_o rule_v the_o faithful_a under_o they_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o star_n do_v this_o inferior_a world_n and_o the_o church_n where_o they_o preside_v be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socket_n for_o lamp_n 〈◊〉_d or_o candlestick_n as_o be_v the_o place_n where_o these_o star_n as_o so_o many_o lamp_n or_o torch_n do_v shine_v where_o they_o be_v set_v or_o fasten_v to_o give_v light_n to_o all_o that_o come_v into_o the_o room_n now_o because_o these_o angel_n be_v so_o considerable_a part_n in_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o message_n which_o be_v send_v to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o christian_a professor_n under_o they_o be_v here_o address_v particular_o to_o the_o angel_n c._n 2._o 1._o and_o so_o in_o the_o rest_n where_o though_o the_o angel_n be_v single_a person_n yet_o what_o be_v say_v to_o they_o be_v not_o say_v only_o to_o their_o person_n but_o to_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o people_n under_o they_o who_o nonproficiency_n or_o remission_n of_o degree_n of_o christian_a virtue_n especial_o their_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o constancy_n and_o courage_n of_o their_o profession_n do_v deserve_v and_o be_v according_o threaten_v with_o the_o removal_n of_o that_o christian_a knowledge_n that_o grace_n those_o privilege_n of_o a_o church_n which_o have_v be_v allow_v they_o c._n 2._o 5._o which_o be_v not_o so_o proper_o appliable_a as_o a_o punishment_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o of_o the_o people_n under_o he_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o paraphrase_n i_o have_v general_o change_v the_o singular_a into_o the_o plural_a number_n by_o that_o mean_n to_o leave_v it_o indifferent_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o each_o church_n and_o the_o people_n under_o he_o and_o yet_o far_o to_o the_o other_o church_n subordinate_a to_o each_o of_o the_o metropoles_fw-la here_o name_v of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v more_o note_n on_o act._n 12._o e._n chap._n ii_o 1._o unto_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n write_v these_o thing_n say_v he_o that_o hold_v the_o seven_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n who_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n paraphrase_n 1._o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o with_o he_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n deliver_v this_o message_n thus_o faith_n christ_n describe_v c._n 1._o 13_o and_o 16._o sustain_v and_o honour_v with_o his_o right_a hand_n the_o seven_o governor_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n and_o come_v now_o to_o visit_v and_o examine_v and_o according_a to_o desert_n to_o punish_v or_o reward_v the_o member_n of_o these_o church_n and_o to_o admonish_v they_o timely_o what_o may_v be_v mend_v in_o they_o 2._o i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o thy_o labour_n and_o thy_o patience_n and_o how_o thou_o can_v not_o bear_v they_o which_o be_v evil_a and_o thou_o have_v try_v they_o which_o note_v a_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o have_v find_v they_o liar_n paraphrase_n 2._o i_o observe_v and_o approve_v your_o labour_n and_o great_a industry_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o your_o most_o constant_a patience_n and_o perseverance_n in_o the_o faith_n your_o no_o kind_a of_o compliance_n with_o the_o vicious_a man_n that_o creep_v in_o among_o you_o you_o have_v put_v the_o false_a teacher_n to_o the_o test_n examine_v their_o doctrine_n and_o mission_n see_v note_n on_o joh._n 20._o b._n and_o find_v they_o to_o be_v counterfeit_n 3._o and_o have_v bear_v and_o have_v patience_n and_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n have_v 〈◊〉_d labour_v and_o have_v not_o faint_v paraphrase_n 3_o and_o you_o have_v former_o undergo_v many_o pressure_n and_o persecution_n and_o hold_v out_o against_o all_o assault_n of_o terror_n or_o difficulty_n and_o for_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n have_v endure_v very_o sore_a and_o sharp_a affliction_n and_o be_v not_o then_o dishearten_v in_o your_o course_n by_o persecution_n in_o the_o way_n 4._o nevertheless_o 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v somewhat_o against_o thou_o because_o thou_o note_v b_o haste_n leave_v thy_o ay_o first_o love_n paraphrase_n 4._o but_o one_o charge_n or_o accusation_n see_v mat._n 5._o 23._o i_o have_v against_o you_o of_o this_o church_n that_o that_o vehement_a pure_a christian_a love_n cast_v out_o all_o fear_n of_o danger_n which_o at_o first_o be_v in_o you_o and_o evidence_v itself_o by_o your_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n with_o courage_n and_o without_o fear_n you_o since_o have_v somewhat_o remit_v and_o be_v not_o altogether_o so_o fervent_a and_o intense_a and_o valiant_a as_o at_o the_o first_o you_o be_v 5._o remember_v therefore_o from_o whence_o thou_o be_v fall_v and_o repent_v and_o do_v the_o first_o work_n or_o else_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o quick_o and_o will_v remove_v thy_o candlestick_n out_o of_o its_o place_n except_o thou_o repent_v paraphrase_n 5._o call_v to_o mind_n therefore_o that_o degree_n of_o christian_a zeal_n and_o courage_n which_o be_v in_o you_o at_o the_o first_o and_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o decay_n return_v to_o it_o again_o and_o act_n as_o christianly_o and_o valiant_o in_o all_o thing_n as_o at_o first_o you_o do_v or_o else_o i_o will_v sudden_o punish_v you_o by_o remove_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o you_o by_o leave_v no_o church_n among_o you_o 6._o but_o this_o thou_o have_v that_o thou_o hate_v the_o note_n c_o deed_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n which_o i_o also_o hate_n paraphrase_n 6._o yet_o one_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v say_v in_o your_o commendation_n that_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o gnostic_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o bait_n of_o lust_n
pardon_n and_o deliverance_n where_o as_o the_o pardon_n and_o deliverance_n be_v the_o thing_n figure_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o man._n so_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o so_o be_v at_o length_n answerable_a to_o the_o eaglelike_a swiftness_n to_o it_o whensoever_o they_o repent_v he_o instant_o pardon_v as_o for_o any_o more_o particular_a application_n of_o these_o four_o likeness_n to_o the_o person_n of_o those_o four_o apostle_n peter_n john_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n as_o that_o peter_n shall_v be_v the_o lion_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o fervour_n and_o fiery_a zeal_n general_o observe_v in_o he_o notwithstanding_o his_o fall_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o primacy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d first_o simon_n in_o the_o gospel_n john_n the_o eagle_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o high_a speculation_n about_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n paul_n the_o ox_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o labour_n more_o abundant_a than_o they_o all_o and_o barnabas_n the_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o title_n of_o humanity_n by_o which_o his_o name_n be_v interpret_v son_n of_o consolation_n i_o shall_v not_o any_o far_o insist_v on_o they_o because_o they_o be_v but_o conjectural_a v._o 8._o six_o wing_n about_o he_o in_o this_o verse_n which_o have_v in_o it_o some_o difficulty_n of_o construction_n it_o be_v first_o evident_a that_o the_o phrase_n full_a of_o eye_n belong_v to_o the_o live_a creature_n and_o not_o to_o the_o wing_n for_o so_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d full_o conclude_v which_o agree_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d creature_n but_o can_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wing_n and_o so_o before_o it_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d v_o 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d four_o live_a creature_n full_a of_o eye_n and_o so_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o wing_n to_o cover_v the_o face_n and_o secret_a part_n and_o to_o fly_v which_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o circuit_n or_o ambience_n next_o if_o the_o greek_a be_v consult_v it_o will_v be_v also_o as_o clear_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d round_o about_o and_o within_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v divide_v 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o our_o ordinary_a translation_n they_o be_v the_o former_a join_v with_o the_o six_o wing_n six_o wing_n round_o about_o they_o and_o the_o latter_a to_o the_o eye_n full_a of_o eye_n within_o but_o be_v both_o together_o to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o full_a of_o eye_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d about_o and_o within_o full_a of_o eye_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d round_o about_o and_o within_o may_v be_v resolve_v by_o v_o 6._o where_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v express_v by_o other_o word_n 〈◊〉_d there_o it_o be_v full_a of_o eye_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o and_o behind_o here_o round_o about_o and_o within_o the_o way_n of_o reconcile_a these_o distant_a phrase_n be_v i_o conceive_v by_o consider_v the_o two_o part_n of_o a_o superficies_n the_o convex_a or_o ambient_fw-la part_n that_o be_v the_o circumference_n and_o the_o concave_n or_o inner_a part_n these_o two_o we_o know_v be_v opposedone_v to_o the_o other_o &_o be_v fit_o express_v by_o either_o of_o these_o two_o pair_n the_o outer_a or_o ambient_fw-la by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d round_o about_o the_o inner_a or_o concave_a by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d within_o and_o so_o again_o be_v here_o apply_v to_o live_a creature_n with_o their_o face_n towards_o we_o the_o ambient_fw-la superficies_n by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behind_o or_o the_o back_n part_n and_o the_o inner_a superficies_n by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o back_z part_n of_o such_o creature_n be_v most_o proper_o the_o convex_a and_o the_o forepart_n especial_o when_o they_o have_v wing_n and_o those_o wing_n make_v a_o king_n of_o half_a circle_n be_v the_o concave_a superficies_n and_o so_o by_o this_o account_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o ver_fw-la 6._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d within_o here_o be_v all_o one_o so_o must_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d about_o here_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behind_o or_o on_o the_o back_n there_o be_v all_o one_o also_o and_o according_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v that_o ch_n 5._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d within_o be_v oppose_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o back_n part_n as_o here_o to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d about_o which_o make_v it_o consequent_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o back_n part_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d about_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o as_o now_o we_o set_v they_o what_o be_v denote_v by_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o eye_n as_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o apostle_n may_v perhaps_o be_v thus_o best_o resolve_v the_o eye_n before_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o their_o foresight_n or_o prophetic_a spirit_n the_o eye_n behind_o those_o that_o look_v back_o to_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o by_o the_o faculty_n of_o interpret_n the_o prophecy_n and_o type_n be_v furnish_v with_o a_o great_a mean_n of_o conviction_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o they_o be_v to_o preach_v in_o show_v they_o christ_n in_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n own_a by_o they_o the_o not_o observe_v the_o meaning_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d within_o as_o it_o be_v here_o all_o one_o with_o before_o ver_fw-la 6._o have_v make_v other_o guess_v that_o their_o inward_a gift_n may_v be_v mean_v by_o that_o and_o the_o outward_a expression_n and_o exercise_n of_o they_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d round_o about_o but_o that_o notion_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o before_o and_o behind_o ver_fw-la 6._o and_o therefore_o can_v reasonable_o be_v think_v to_o have_v place_n here_o moses_n have_v foretell_v that_o a_o prophet_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o that_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o they_o that_o hear_v not_o he_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o this_o the_o apostle_n understand_v to_o be_v the_o present_a case_n of_o the_o jew_n see_v this_o by_o their_o eye_n behind_o they_o and_o so_o by_o the_o many_o other_o passage_n in_o the_o prophet_n to_o this_o same_o purpose_n and_o beside_o they_o have_v many_o revelation_n now_o to_o this_o matter_n and_o those_o be_v their_o eye_n before_o and_o according_o wheresover_o they_o come_v they_o warn_v all_o of_o this_o approach_a destruction_n chap._n v._n 1._o and_o i_o see_v note_v a_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n a_o book_n note_n b_o write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o back_n side_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n paraphrase_n 1._o and_o as_o god_n sit_v on_o his_o tribunal_n or_o throne_n of_o judgement_n behold_v there_o be_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n a_o book_n or_o roll_n see_v note_n on_o luk._n 4._o a._n full_a of_o write_v on_o the_o inside_n and_o on_o the_o backside_n a_o great_a way_n down_o and_o that_o roll_v up_o and_o on_o the_o outside_n seal_v that_o no_o part_n of_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v read_v and_o this_o roll_n consist_v of_o seven_o roll_n one_o within_o another_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v a_o seal_n to_o it_o ch_z 6._o 1._o this_o book_n of_o roll_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o seal_v that_o be_v secret_a decree_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o jew_n which_o as_o they_o be_v foretell_v only_o by_o christ_n mat._n 24._o luk._n 21_o mar._n 13._o so_o be_v they_o by_o he_o inflict_v and_o execute_v upon_o they_o and_o that_o a_o effect_n of_o his_o regal_a power_n to_o which_o after_o his_o crucifixion_n he_o be_v by_o his_o resurrection_n install_v 2._o and_o i_o see_v a_o 〈◊〉_d strong_a angel_n proclaim_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n who_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o to_o loose_v the_o seal_v thereof_o paraphrase_n 2._o and_o i_o see_v one_o of_o the_o angel_n of_o special_a dignity_n among_o they_o make_v proclamation_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n in_o these_o word_n who_o be_v able_a to_o unloose_v the_o seal_n of_o this_o book_n and_o so_o to_o open_v it_o to_o reveal_v to_o we_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o 3._o and_o no_o man_n in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n nor_o under_o the_o earth_n be_v able_a to_o open_v the_o book_n neither_o to_o look_v thereon_o paraphrase_n 3._o and_o it_o seem_v no_o creature_n in_o the_o world_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o for_o upon_o this_o proclamation_n to_o all_o none_o pretend_v to_o it_o 4._o and_o i_o 〈◊〉_d weep_v much_o because_o no_o man_n be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v and_o to_o read_v the_o book_n neither_o to_o look_v thereon_o paraphrase_n 4._o and_o my_o desire_n to_o know_v cause_v i_o to_o be_v much_o
enable_v to_o speak_v as_o it_o here_o follow_v and_o to_o give_v this_o to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o notion_n of_o that_o forementioned_a note_v k._n must_v signify_v to_o devise_v art_n by_o which_o oracle_n be_v now_o give_v or_o the_o devil_n raise_v to_o give_v response_n in_o those_o other_o place_n where_o these_o roman_a worship_n have_v be_v receive_v that_o the_o oracle_n at_o cumae_n at_o dodona_n at_o delphos_n in_o all_o boeotia_n and_o in_o most_o other_o place_n be_v become_v dumb_a before_o this_o time_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o heathen_a writer_n and_o plutarch_n discourse_n of_o that_o subject_n be_v very_o considerable_a to_o show_v the_o influence_n that_o the_o christian_a faith_n have_v on_o this_o &_o how_o idol-worship_n lose_v much_o of_o its_o reputation_n by_o this_o mean_n these_o augur_n then_o and_o heathen_a priest_n as_o they_o do_v undertake_v to_o divine_v by_o look_v into_o entrail_n of_o sacrifice_n &_o by_o many_o other_o way_n so_o do_v they_o contrive_v the_o deliver_n of_o oracle_n in_o new_a place_n as_o in_o pontus_n by_o aesculapius_n and_o the_o like_a as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o lucian_n pseudomantis_n this_o practice_n continue_v public_a as_o long_o as_o the_o emperor_n continue_v pagan_a and_o afterward_o more_o private_o but_o about_o the_o time_n to_o which_o this_o vision_n belong_v that_o be_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o domitian_n as_o also_o of_o trajan_n and_o adrian_n upon_o the_o great_a defection_n of_o oracle_n the_o devil_n in_o these_o his_o agent_n be_v most_o active_a to_o repair_v the_o loss_n by_o set_v up_o new_a imposture_n in_o this_o kind_n and_o this_o as_o a_o branch_n or_o effect_v of_o that_o prophetic_a power_n signify_v by_o the_o second_o horn_n of_o this_o second_o beast_n like_v unto_o the_o lamp_n ver_fw-la 11._o and_o to_o this_o must_v be_v apply_v that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o verse_n subjoin_v immediate_o to_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o two_o horn_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o second_o beast_n speak_v that_o be_v these_o augur_n prophesy_v or_o deliver_v oracle_n as_o the_o dragon_n first_o wicked_o and_o cruel_o for_o the_o advance_n of_o satan_n kingdom_n as_o when_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o stir_v up_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o officer_n against_o the_o christian_n see_v lucian_n in_o pseudomant_n concern_v alexander_n the_o magician_n and_o so_o ●aith_n baronius_n an._n 272._o §_o 20._o the_o gentile-priest_n do_v out_o of_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o sibyl_n incense_v the_o emperor_n against_o the_o christian_n second_o cunning_o doubtful_o give_v their_o response_n in_o obscure_a form_n veil_v their_o prediction_n in_o equivocal_a speech_n as_o the_o devil_n that_o know_v some_o future_n and_o guess_v at_o other_o be_v wise_o and_o politic_o wont_a to_o do_v the_o former_a of_o these_o seem_v chief_o to_o be_v mean_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o dragon_n because_o in_o this_o v_o 15._o after_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n speak_v be_v immediate_o add_v and_o cause_n that_o as_o many_o as_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v be_v kill_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v._o 16._o a_o mark_n in_o their_o right_a hand_n the_o give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mark_n in_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o forehead_n be_v ordinary_a in_o syria_n and_o the_o neighbour_n country_n not_o as_o a_o brand_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v among_o other_o by_o way_n of_o punishment_n see_v gal._n 6._o 17._o but_o as_o a_o note_n of_o servant_n or_o to_o discriminate_a the_o servant_n of_o one_o master_n from_o another_o these_o mark_n be_v either_o in_o their_o right_a hand_n or_o arm_n or_o wrist_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d oft_o signify_v and_o not_o only_o the_o hand_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v mar._n 7._o note_v a._n or_o in_o their_o forehead_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v julian_n mark_n of_o soldier_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n or_o wrist_n and_o lucian_n de_fw-fr dea_fw-la syr._n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v mark_v on_o the_o wrist_n so_o that_o to_o cause_n all_o to_o receive_v this_o mark_n be_v to_o force_v all_o to_o the_o receive_v these_o idol-worship_n and_o the_o way_n of_o force_v they_o be_v specify_v ver_n 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o no_o man_n may_v buy_v or_o sell_v that_o will_v not_o that_o be_v incense_a the_o emperor_n and_o his_o officer_n in_o the_o province_n to_o make_v interdict_v against_o christian_a assembly_n and_o to_o proceed_v severe_o and_o capital_o against_o all_o that_o use_v any_o but_o these_o heathen_a idol-worship_n this_o whole_a passage_n seem_v to_o allude_v to_o the_o tyranny_n of_o ptolemaeus_n philopator_n upon_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o three_o of_o the_o maccabee_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o make_v a_o edict_n to_o bring_v disgrace_n upon_o the_o nation_n and_o upon_o a_o tower_n join_v to_o the_o court_n he_o erect_v a_o pillar_n and_o engrave_v on_o it_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v enter_v but_o those_o who_o sacrifice_v after_o the_o heathen_a manner_n to_o their_o god_n and_o that_o all_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o be_v enroll_v &_o put_v in_o a_o servile_a condition_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v enroll_v shall_v be_v mark_v also_o with_o fire_n upon_o their_o body_n with_o bacchus_n ensign_n a_o ivieleafe_n which_o passage_n seem_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o speak_v of_o ptolemaeus_n philopator_n mark_v man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o ivie-leaves_a all_o which_o we_o see_v signify_v the_o mark_v they_o out_o as_o servant_n with_o the_o ensign_n of_o their_o heathen_a god_n bacchus_n as_o here_o with_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v of_o idol-worship_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 17._o name_n of_o the_o beast_n beside_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n here_o be_v mention_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n which_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o be_v receive_v on_o their_o wrist_n or_o forehead_n as_o the_o mark_n be_v for_o so_o the_o construction_n carry_v it_o he_o cause_v all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o a_o mark_n ver_fw-la 16._o and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v buy_v or_o sell_v save_v he_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n or_o the_o name_n or_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n where_o 〈◊〉_d as_o their_o have_v a_o mark_n give_v they_o be_v all_o one_o with_o receive_v and_o have_v it_o so_o the_o have_v the_o name_n and_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v be_v all_o one_o with_o their_o receive_n it_o and_o then_o this_o will_v signify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o several_a way_n whereby_o servant_n or_o worshipper_n of_o the_o heathen_a idol_n be_v initiate_v or_o receive_v and_o discriminate_v from_o other_o first_o by_o a_o mark_n or_o ensign_n of_o that_o god_n who_o worship_n it_o be_v a_o ivie-leaf_n for_o bacchus_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v thyrfigeri_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o like_a second_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o god_n engrave_v on_o they_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apollo_n bacchus_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o c._n 14._o v._n 11._o we_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o must_v there_o best_o be_v render_v the_o engrave_v of_o his_o name_n three_o by_o numeral_a letter_n which_o make_v up_o the_o same_o sum_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o god_n make_v which_o be_v but_o a_o mystical_a or_o cabalistical_a way_n of_o have_v the_o name_n understand_v by_o they_o that_o use_v it_o but_o not_o easy_o understand_v by_o any_o man_n else_o of_o these_o servius_n on_o virgil_n make_v frequent_a mention_n and_o martianus_n capella_n mention_n xn_v as_o the_o mystical_a name_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n and_o a_o example_n of_o this_o manner_n of_o describe_v a_o god_n even_o christ_n himself_o have_v be_v set_v down_o from_o the_o sibylline_a oracle_n note_v on_o 1_o pet._n 4._o f._n have_v go_v thus_o far_o it_o be_v now_o observable_a that_o these_o four_o phrase_n worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n ver_fw-la 15._o have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n have_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v all_o here_o use_v in_o the_o same_o matter_n as_o thing_n command_v under_o severe_a interdict_v either_o capital_a punishment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o may_v be_v kill_v that_o do_v it_o not_o or_o expulsion_n from_o humane_a society_n that_o they_o may_v not_o buy_v or_o
rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o he_o tread_v the_o winepress_a of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d fierceness_n and_o wrath_n of_o almighty_a god_n paraphrase_n 15._o and_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n proceed_v that_o terrible_a sharp_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n his_o threat_n against_o his_o enemy_n and_o those_o now_o to_o be_v execute_v on_o the_o heathen_a who_o he_o shall_v now_o subdue_v by_o his_o power_n because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v convert_v in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v now_o prepare_v for_o they_o the_o bitter_a poisonous_a potion_n that_o ever_o be_v drink_v by_o any_o 16._o and_o he_o have_v note_n b_o on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n paraphrase_n 16._o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o will_v show_v himself_o what_o real_o he_o be_v too_o strong_a for_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n to_o resist_v or_o stand_v our_o against_o 17._o and_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o sun_n and_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v to_o all_o the_o fowl_n that_o fly_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n come_v and_o gather_v yourselves_o together_o to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o great_a god_n paraphrase_n 17._o and_o methinks_v i_o see_v a_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o sun_n note_v the_o clearness_n of_o the_o vision_n now_o deliver_v and_o he_o call_v to_o all_o the_o bird_n of_o prey_n goth_n and_o vandal_n etc._n etc._n that_o they_o shall_v come_v as_o to_o a_o feast_n to_o this_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o these_o idolater_n note_v the_o great_a slaughter_n which_o be_v now_o foretell_v to_o which_o vulture_n do_v betake_v themselves_o our_o of_o a_o natural_a sagacity_n as_o job_n say_v of_o the_o eagle_n where_o the_o slay_n be_v there_o be_v he_o 18._o destruction_n that_o you_o may_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o king_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o 〈◊〉_d captain_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o mighty_a man_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o horse_n and_o of_o they_o that_o sit_v on_o they_o and_o the_o flesh_n of_o all_o man_n both_o free_a and_o bond_n both_o small_a and_o great_a 19_o and_o i_o see_v the_o beast_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o army_n gather_v together_o to_o make_v warrre_v against_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o horse_n and_o against_o his_o army_n paraphrase_n 19_o and_o the_o idol-worship_n set_v up_o at_o rome_n and_o under_o her_o dominion_n set_v itself_o to_o persecute_v christianity_n 20._o and_o the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o with_o he_o the_o false_a prophet_n that_o wrought_v miracle_n before_o he_o with_o which_o he_o deceive_v they_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v his_o image_n these_o both_o be_v cast_v alive_a into_o a_o lake_n burn_v with_o brimstone_n paraphrase_n 20._o and_o the_o roman_a idolatry_n and_o the_o magic_n and_o augury_n and_o the_o divination_n of_o the_o heathen_a priest_n that_o have_v deceive_v the_o carnal_a christian_n so_o far_o as_o to_o consent_v and_o comply_v with_o the_o heathenish_a idolatry_n be_v to_o be_v like_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n utter_o extirpate_v see_v ch_n 13._o 11._o and_o note_v g._n 21._o and_o the_o remnant_n be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o horse_n which_o sword_n proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n and_o all_o the_o fowl_n be_v fill_v with_o their_o flesh_n paraphrase_n 21._o and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v all_o the_o se●●et_a idolater_n be_v sweep_v away_o in_o the_o same_o destruction_n also_o for_o think_v that_o these_o army_n against_o rome_n will_v be_v favourable_a to_o any_o more_o than_o to_o the_o orthodox_n pure_a christian_n they_o then_o think_v it_o a_o fit_a time_n to_o discover_v themselves_o but_o strange_o miscarry_v in_o it_o the_o christian_n that_o flee_v to_o the_o basilica_n or_o temple_n be_v the_o only_a person_n that_o find_v deliverance_n see_v note_n on_o ch_z 17._o c._n and_o so_o all_o their_o idol-worship_n be_v destroy_v which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o this_o chapter_n annotation_n on_o chap._n xix_o 〈◊〉_d v._o 8._o righteousness_n of_o the_o saint_n some_o difficulty_n there_o be_v in_o this_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v ordinary_o render_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o thus_o use_v in_o these_o book_n see_v note_n on_o rom._n 8._o b._n but_o for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n and_o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o very_a word_n which_o be_v use_v to_o denote_v the_o sanctuary_n heb._n 8._o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o minister_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sanctuary_n ch_n 9_o 2._o and_o elsewhere_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o neuter_n as_o well_o as_o the_o masculine_a gender_n and_o by_o consequence_n capable_a of_o be_v accommodate_v to_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v not_o improbable_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v denote_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n the_o levitical_a law_n or_o custom_n among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o that_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v wear_v that_o vesture_n of_o fine_a linen_n pure_a and_o white_a thus_o levit._n 16._o it_o be_v appoint_v thus_o shall_v aaron_n come_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n v_o 3._o he_o shall_v put_v on_o the_o holy_a linen_n coat_n and_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o linen_n breech_n upon_o his_o flesh_n and_o shall_v be_v gird_v with_o a_o linen_n girdle_n and_o with_o the_o linen_n mitre_n shall_v he_o be_v attire_v these_o be_v holy_a garment_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v the_o garment_n which_o he_o be_v to_o use_v when_o he_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n which_o be_v appoint_v he_o by_o this_o law_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n may_v fit_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o holies_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o than_o it_o will_v most_o fit_o be_v apply_v to_o this_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o christian_a church_n to_o which_o christ_n be_v ready_a so_o solemn_o to_o be_v marry_v ver_fw-la 7._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o his_o courtier_n that_o it_o shall_v now_o be_v clothe_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n to_o note_v the_o great_a liberty_n and_o immunity_n and_o privilege_n now_o bestow_v on_o the_o church_n by_o the_o emperor_n this_o we_o have_v former_o see_v express_v by_o our_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n chap._n 1._o note_n c._n priest_n in_o respect_n of_o liberty_n of_o assembly_n and_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v so_o eminent_o bestow_v on_o the_o church_n by_o constantine_n above_o all_o that_o ever_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n before_o may_v here_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v most_o fit_o express_v by_o be_v clothe_v in_o the_o holy_a garment_n which_o denote_v the_o priest_n go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n 〈◊〉_d v._o 16._o on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n the_o mention_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vesture_n and_o thigh_n be_v here_o put_v together_o to_o denote_v the_o robe_n imperial_a by_o the_o former_a and_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v gird_v on_o the_o thigh_n by_o the_o latter_a as_o ensign_n of_o supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n especial_o when_o on_o they_o both_o on_o the_o robe_n and_o the_o hilt_n of_o the_o sword_n as_o the_o ensign_n of_o that_o office_n be_v write_v that_o most_o honourable_a title_n king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n thereby_o note_v he_o to_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o power_n and_o force_v in_o the_o world_n triumphant_o victorious_a over_o all_o chap._n xx._n 1._o and_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o a_o great_a chain_n 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o hand_n paraphrase_n 1._o and_o i_o see_v another_o representation_n by_o which_o i_o discern_v what_o shall_v succeed_v the_o conversion_n of_o heathen_a rome_n to_o christianity_n viz._n a_o tranquillity_n and_o flourish_a estate_n of_o christianity_n for_o some_o time_n though_o not_o for_o ever_o and_o first_o methinks_v i_o see_v a_o angel_n come_v from_o heaven_n a_o token_n of_o very_o good_a news_n at_o this_o time_n and_o elsewhere_o as_o sometime_o of_o judgement_n from_o god_n with_o the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o a_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n to_o signify_v what_o follow_v v_o 2._o that_o satan_n shall_v now_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o chain_v 2._o and_o he_o lay_v hold_v
above_o all_o angel_n etc._n etc._n a_o place_n of_o preeminence_n peculiar_a to_o he_o chap._n xxiv_o 1._o now_o upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n very_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n they_o come_v unto_o the_o sepulchre_n bring_v the_o spice_n which_o they_o have_v prepare_v and_o certain_a other_o with_o they_o paraphrase_n 1._o marry_o magdalen_n etc._n etc._n mat._n 27._o 1._o and_o here_o v_o 10._o 2._o and_o they_o find_v the_o stone_n roll_v away_o from_o the_o sepulchre_n 3._o and_o they_o enter_v in_o and_o find_v not_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 4._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o they_o be_v much_o perplex_v thereabouts_o behold_v two_o man_n stand_v by_o they_o in_o shine_a garment_n 5._o and_o as_o they_o be_v afraid_a and_o bow_v down_o their_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n they_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o seek_v you_o the_o live_n among_o the_o dead_a paraphrase_n 5._o and_o do_v obeisance_n to_o they_o they_o ask_v they_o say_v do_v you_o search_v in_o a_o tomb_n or_o grave_n for_o one_o that_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a 6._o he_o be_v not_o here_o but_o be_v rise_v remember_v how_o he_o speak_v unto_o you_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o galilee_n paraphrase_n 6._o mat._n 17._o 23._o 7._o say_v the_o son_n of_o man_n must_v be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinful_a man_n and_o be_v crucify_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o paraphrase_n 7._o put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o heathen_n roman_n 8._o and_o they_o remember_v his_o word_n 9_o and_o return_v from_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o tell_v all_o these_o thing_n unto_o the_o eleven_o and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n paraphrase_n 9_o the_o other_o disciple_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o ofthat_o number_n 10._o it_o be_v mary_n magdalen_n and_o joanna_n and_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o james_n and_o other_o woman_n that_o be_v with_o they_o which_o tell_v these_o thing_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 11._o and_o their_o word_n seem_v to_o they_o as_o idle_a tale_n and_o they_o believe_v they_o not_o 12._o then_o arise_v peter_n and_o run_v unto_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o stoop_v down_o he_o behold_v the_o linen_n clothe_v lay_v by_o themselves_o and_o that_o depart_v wonder_v in_o himself_o at_o that_o which_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v paraphrase_n 12._o and_o return_v to_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o come_v and_o where_o he_o abide_v be_v much_o amaze_v to_o see_v the_o body_n go_v our_o of_o the_o grave_n see_v note_n on_o joh._n 20._o a_o 13._o and_o behold_v two_o of_o they_o go_v that_o same_o day_n to_o a_o village_n call_v emmaus_n which_o be_v from_o jerusalem_n about_o threescore_o furlong_n paraphrase_n 13._o mar_n 16._o 12._o 14._o and_o they_o talk_v together_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o have_v happen_v 15._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o while_n they_o commune_v together_o and_o reason_v jesus_n himself_o draw_v near_o and_o go_v with_o they_o paraphrase_n 15._o join_v himself_o to_o their_o company_n 16._o but_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o paraphrase_n 16._o and_o at_o first_o through_o god_n will_v so_o dispose_v it_o they_o discern_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n 17._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o what_o manner_n of_o communication_n be_v these_o that_o you_o have_v one_o to_o another_o as_o you_o walk_v and_o be_v sad_a 18._o and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o who_o name_n be_v note_v a_o cleophas_n answer_v say_v unto_o he_o be_v thou_o only_o a_o stranger_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o have_v not_o know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v there_o in_o these_o day_n paraphrase_n 18._o that_o be_v notorious_o come_v to_o pass_v there_o and_o talk_v of_o by_o all_o at_o this_o time_n 19_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o what_o thing_n and_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o concern_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n which_o be_v a_o prophet_n mighty_a in_o deed_n and_o word_n before_o god_n and_o all_o the_o people_n paraphrase_n 19_o in_o miracle_n and_o in_o doctrine_n approve_v by_o god_n 20._o and_o how_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o our_o ruler_n deliver_v he_o to_o be_v condemn_v to_o death_n and_o have_v crucify_a he_o paraphrase_n 20._o to_o the_o roman_a procurator_n accuse_v he_o and_o require_v he_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o according_o at_o last_o they_o 21._o but_o we_o trust_v that_o it_o have_v be_v he_o which_o shall_v have_v redeem_v israel_n and_o beside_o all_o this_o to_o day_n be_v the_o three_o day_n since_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v paraphrase_n 21._o but_o we_o be_v full_a of_o hope_n that_o he_o have_v be_v the_o messiah_n so_o long_o expect_v by_o we_o and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o day_n since_o his_o crucifixion_n 22._o yea_o and_o certain_a woman_n also_o of_o our_o company_n make_v we_o astonish_v which_o be_v early_o at_o the_o sepulchre_n paraphrase_n 22._o some_o woman_n that_o be_v follower_n of_o he_o together_o with_o we_o and_o that_o be_v this_o morning_n at_o the_o monument_n wherein_o he_o be_v lay_v come_v and_o tell_v we_o wonderful_a thing_n 23._o and_o when_o they_o find_v not_o his_o body_n they_o come_v say_v that_o they_o have_v also_o see_v a_o vision_n of_o angel_n which_o say_v that_o he_o be_v alive_a paraphrase_n 23._o how_o that_o they_o find_v not_o his_o body_n there_o but_o meet_v with_o angel_n which_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a 24._o and_o certain_a of_o they_o which_o be_v with_o we_o go_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o find_v it_o even_o so_o as_o the_o woman_n have_v say_v but_o he_o they_o see_v not_o paraphrase_n 24._o and_o some_o of_o the_o twelve_o disciple_n peter_n and_o john_n 25._o then_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o fool_n and_o slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v 26._o ought_v not_o christ_n to_o have_v suffer_v these_o thing_n and_o to_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n paraphrase_n 26._o be_v it_o not_o by_o those_o prophet_n foretell_v to_o be_v decree_v by_o god_n that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v be-despised_n by_o man_n and_o slaughter_a by_o they_o isa_n 53._o 8._o before_o he_o shall_v enter_v on_o his_o kingdom_n 27._o and_o beginning_n at_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n he_o expound_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n the_o thing_n concern_v himself_o 28._o and_o they_o draw_v nigh_o unto_o the_o village_n whither_o they_o go_v and_o he_o make_v as_o though_o he_o will_v have_v go_v far_a 29._o but_o they_o constrain_v he_o say_v abide_v with_o we_o for_o it_o be_v towards_o evening_n and_o the_o day_n be_v far_o spend_v and_o he_o go_v in_o to_o tarry_v with_o they_o 30._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o he_o sit_v at_o meat_n with_o they_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o paraphrase_n 30._o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n bless_v the_o meat_n and_o carve_v and_o distribute_v it_o to_o they_o 31._o and_o their_o eye_n be_v open_v and_o they_o know_v he_o and_o he_o vanish_v out_o of_o their_o sight_n paraphrase_n 31._o which_o occasion_v see_v v._n 35._o their_o first_o suspicion_n that_o it_o be_v christ_n and_o present_o they_o discern_v that_o it_o be_v very_a he_o and_o he_o immediate_o disappear_v in_o what_o manner_n or_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v not_o know_v 32._o and_o they_o say_v one_o to_o another_o do_v not_o our_o heart_n burn_v within_o we_o while_o he_o talk_v with_o we_o by_o the_o way_n and_o while_o he_o open_v to_o we_o the_o scripture_n paraphrase_n 32._o be_v there_o not_o a_o unusuallwarmth_n of_o affection_n and_o passion_n upon_o we_o all_o the_o time_n that_o 33._o and_o they_o rise_v up_o the_o same_o hour_n and_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o find_v the_o eleven_o gather_v together_o and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o paraphrase_n 33._o use_v to_o associate_v with_o they_o 34._o say_v the_o lord_n be_v rise_v indeed_o and_o have_v appear_v to_o simon_n paraphrase_n 34._o and_o assoon_o as_o they_o come_v tell_v they_o say_v see_v 1_o cor._n 15._o 5._o 35._o and_o they_o tell_v what_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o way_n and_o how_o he_o be_v know_v of_o they_o in_o break_v bread_n paraphrase_n 35._o by_o his_o blessing_n and_o carve_v the_o meat_n ver_fw-la 30._o they_o come_v to_o discern_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n not_o know_v it_o a_o long_a time_n 36._o and_o as_o they_o thus_o speak_v jesus_n himself_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o peace_n be_v unto_o you_o 37._o but_o they_o be_v terrify_v and_o affright_v and_o suppose_v that_o they_o have_v see_v a_o spirit_n paraphrase_n 37._o and_o they_o be_v in_o a_o terrible_a
man_n be_v come_v in_o which_o have_v bury_v thy_o dead_a husband_n and_o now_o they_o shall_v do_v as_o much_o for_o thou_o 10._o then_o fall_v she_o down_o straightway_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o the_o young_a man_n come_v in_o &_o find_v her_o dead_a and_o carry_v she_o forth_o bury_v she_o by_o her_o husband_n 11._o and_o great_a fear_n come_v upon_o all_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o as_o many_o as_o hear_v these_o thing_n paraphrase_n 11._o and_o all_o the_o believer_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o great_a reverence_n and_o so_o be_v all_o other_o to_o who_o it_o be_v relate_v 12._o and_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v many_o sign_n and_o wonder_n wrought_v among_o the_o people_n and_o they_o be_v all_o with_o one_o accord_n in_o solomon_n porch_n paraphrase_n 12._o and_o they_o solemn_o meet_v together_o to_o preach_v and_o do_v miracle_n in_o the_o entrance_n to_o the_o temple_n call_v solomon_n porch_n 13._o and_o of_o the_o rest_n dare_v no_o man_n join_v himself_o to_o they_o but_o the_o people_n magnify_v they_o paraphrase_n 13._o and_o no_o other_o of_o the_o believer_n or_o christian_n call_v the_o church_n v._n 11._o dare_v consort_n with_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n through_o the_o reverence_n v_o 11._o which_o these_o late_a act_n have_v wrought_v in_o they_o but_o the_o people_n that_o see_v and_o hear_v what_o be_v do_v magnify_v they_o 14._o and_o believer_n be_v the_o more_o add_v to_o the_o lord_n multitudes_z both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n paraphrase_n 14._o and_o these_o miracle_n that_o wrought_v such_o a_o reverence_n in_o the_o believer_n be_v a_o mean_n also_o to_o work_v faith_n in_o all_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o the_o people_n 15._o insomuch_o that_o they_o bring_v forth_o the_o sick_a into_o the_o street_n and_o lay_v they_o on_o bed_n and_o couch_n that_o at_o the_o least_o the_o shadow_n of_o peter_n pass_v by_o might_n overshadow_v some_o of_o they_o paraphrase_n 15._o and_o the_o people_n v._n 12._o have_v such_o confidence_n in_o their_o power_n of_o work_v miraculous_a cure_n that_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o very_a shadow_n of_o peter_n walk_v by_o a_o disease_a man_n will_v work_v a_o cure_n on_o he_o and_o thereupon_o they_o bring_v forth_o their_o sick_a and_o impotent_a friend_n those_o that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o go_v or_o stand_v and_o lay_v they_o upon_o bed_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o passage_n that_o as_o peter_n come_v by_o his_o shadow_n may_v come_v over_o some_o of_o they_o 16._o there_o come_v also_o a_o multitude_n out_o of_o the_o city_n about_o unto_o jerusalem_n bring_v sick_a folks_n and_o they_o which_o be_v vex_v with_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o they_o be_v heal_v every_o one_o paraphrase_n 16._o and_o the_o fame_n of_o their_o miracle_n spread_v into_o the_o country_n and_o region_n and_o other_o city_n about_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o thence_o they_o bring_v 17._o then_o the_o high_a priest_n rise_v up_o and_o all_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o sadducee_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o 〈◊〉_d indignation_n paraphrase_n 17._o and_o the_o sanhedrim_n most_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o sadducee_n set_v themselves_o very_o zealous_o against_o they_o 18._o and_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o apostle_n and_o put_v they_o in_o the_o common_a prison_n paraphrase_n 18._o and_o apprehend_v the_o apostle_n and_o imprison_v they_o in_o the_o common_a gaol_n 19_o but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o night_n open_v the_o prison_n door_n and_o bring_v they_o forth_o and_o say_v 20._o go_v note_z d_o stand_v and_o speak_v in_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o people_n all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o life_n paraphrase_n 20._o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n 21._o and_o when_o they_o hear_v that_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n early_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o teach_v but_o the_o high_a priest_n come_v and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o and_o call_v the_o council_n together_o and_o all_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o send_v to_o the_o prison_n to_o have_v they_o bring_v paraphrase_n 21._o and_o in_o obedience_n to_o that_o direction_n they_o betake_v themselves_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o there_o expound_v the_o scripture_n and_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o it_o but_o they_o of_o the_o sanhedrim_n think_v they_o have_v still_o be_v in_o hold_n go_v into_o the_o court_n and_o send_v sergeant_n to_o the_o prison_n to_o have_v they_o beought_v before_o they_o 22._o but_o when_o the_o officer_n come_v and_o find_v they_o not_o in_o the_o prison_n they_o return_v and_o tell_v 23._o say_v the_o prison_n true_o find_v we_o shut_v with_o all_o safety_n and_o the_o keeper_n stand_v without_o before_o the_o door_n but_o when_o we_o have_v open_v we_o find_v no_o man_n within_o paraphrase_n 23._o and_o a_o guard_n of_o soldier_n with_o out_o watch_v the_o door_n of_o the_o prison_n but_o when_o we_o enter_v none_o of_o these_o prisoner_n be_v within_o 24._o now_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o chief_a priest_n hear_v these_o thing_n they_o doubt_v 〈◊〉_d of_o they_o whereunto_o this_o will_v grow_v paraphrase_n 24._o and_o when_o the_o sanhedrim_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o also_o the_o captain_n of_o that_o band_n of_o soldier_n who_o have_v set_v the_o guard_n upon_o the_o prison_n v_o 23._o see_v ch_z 4._o 1._o and_o lu._n 22._o f._n have_v this_o word_n bring_v to_o they_o they_o be_v much_o perplex_v and_o wonder_v how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o prison_n be_v shut_v and_o the_o watch_n at_o the_o door_n yet_o none_o of_o the_o prisoner_n shall_v be_v within_o and_o conceive_v that_o this_o do_v abide_v some_o strange_a matter_n 25._o then_o come_v one_o and_o tell_v they_o say_v behold_v the_o man_n who_o you_o put_v in_o prison_n be_v stand_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n paraphrase_n 25._o be_v in_o the_o temple_n instruct_v all_o that_o come_v thither_o 26._o then_o go_v the_o captain_n with_o the_o officer_n and_o bring_v they_o without_o violence_n for_o they_o fear_v the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v stone_v paraphrase_n 26._o and_o the_o captain_n that_o guard_v the_o temple_n see_v note_n on_o lu._n 22._o f._n together_o with_o his_o soldier_n go_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o apprehend_v they_o 27._o and_o when_o they_o have_v bring_v they_o they_o set_v they_o before_o the_o council_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n ask_v they_o paraphrase_n 27._o bring_v they_o before_o the_o court_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n examine_v they_o 28._o say_v do_v not_o we_o straight_o command_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o teach_v in_o this_o name_n and_o behold_v you_o have_v fill_v jerusalem_n with_o your_o doctrine_n and_o 〈◊〉_d intend_v to_o bring_v that_o man_n blood_n upon_o we_o paraphrase_n 28._o not_o to_o publish_v this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o you_o contrariwise_o have_v publish_v it_o in_o the_o temple_n to_o all_o the_o city_n and_o do_v your_o best_a by_o lay_v his_o blood_n to_o our_o charge_n to_o raise_v up_o to_o the_o people_n against_o we_o as_o against_o murderer_n 29._o then_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n answer_v and_o say_v we_o ought_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n paraphrase_n 29._o and_o the_o apostle_n answer_v as_o before_o they_o have_v do_v ch_n 4._o 19_o we_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o publish_v it_o and_o then_o your_o interdict_v be_v not_o to_o have_v any_o force_n though_o magistrate_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v in_o all_o their_o lawful_a command_n and_o their_o punishment_n to_o be_v endure_v without_o resistance_n as_o they_o be_v by_o we_o v_o 18_o &_o 26._o yet_o when_o god_n fetch_v we_o out_o of_o prison_n and_o command_v we_o to_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o angel_n v._n 20._o we_o be_v to_o render_v obedience_n to_o he_o and_o not_o to_o your_o contrary_n interdict_v 30._o the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n raise_v up_o jesus_n who_o you_o slay_v and_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n 31._o he_o have_v god_n exalt_v 〈◊〉_d with_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v note_n e_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n for_o to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n paraphrase_n 30_o 31._o the_o god_n of_o israel_n acknowledge_v by_o we_o all_o have_v send_v the_o messiah_n into_o the_o world_n furnish_v with_o his_o special_a commission_n and_o when_o you_o crucify_v he_o as_o a_o malefactor_n raise_v he_o from_o death_n take_v he_o into_o heaven_n and_o instate_v he_o in_o his_o regal_a power_n that_o
he_o may_v be_v a_o spiritual_a prince_n reign_v in_o man_n heart_n at_o his_o father_n right_a hand_n from_o thence_o to_o send_v the_o spirit_n of_o his_o father_n who_o be_v not_o to_o descend_v till_o he_o be_v ascend_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o give_v you_o jew_n place_n of_o repentance_n that_o if_o you_o yet_o come_v in_o and_o repent_v and_o believe_v on_o he_o you_o may_v have_v pardon_n of_o sin_n 32._o and_o we_o be_v his_o winess_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o so_o be_v also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o god_n have_v give_v to_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o paraphrase_n 32._o the_o truth_n of_o this_o we_o testify_v and_o so_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o come_v down_o upon_o we_o and_o upon_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v come_v in_o and_o consort_v with_o we_o ch_n 4._o 31._o and_o by_o we_o be_v communicate_v to_o all_o that_o come_v in_o and_o believe_v and_o yield_v obedience_n to_o he_o 33._o when_o they_o hear_v that_o they_o they_o be_v note_v f_o cut_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o take_v counsel_n to_o slay_v they_o paraphrase_n 33._o and_o upon_o this_o answer_n of_o they_o they_o fall_v into_o great_a fierceness_n against_o they_o and_o enter_v into_o consultation_n of_o put_v they_o to_o death_n 34._o then_o stand_v there_o up_o one_o in_o the_o council_n a_o pharisee_n name_v gamali●l_o a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n have_v in_o great_a reputation_n among_o all_o the_o people_n and_o command_v to_o put_v the_o apostle_n forth_o a_o little_a space_n 35._o and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o man_n of_o israel_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o 〈◊〉_d what_o you_o intend_v to_o do_v as_o touch_v these_o man_n 36._o for_o before_o these_o day_n rise_v up_o note_n g_o theudas_n boast_v himself_o to_o be_v somebody_o to_o who_o a_o number_n of_o man_n about_o four_o hundred_o join_v themselves_o who_o be_v slay_v and_o all_o as_o many_o as_o obey_v he_o be_v scatter_v and_o bring_v to_o nought_o paraphrase_n 36._o for_o we_o have_v example_n of_o man_n that_o have_v gather_v follower_n and_o raise_v sedition_n among_o the_o people_n and_o come_v to_o nothing_o as_o for_o instance_n theudas_n that_o undertake_v to_o be_v a_o general_n boast_v that_o he_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o so_o get_v 400_o man_n to_o follow_v he_o but_o soon_o miscarry_v and_o be_v himself_o kill_v and_o all_o put_v to_o flight_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o so_o his_o design_n be_v utter_o frustrate_v 37._o after_o this_o man_n rose_z up_z note_z h_z judas_z of_o galilee_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o b._n tax_n and_o draw_v away_o much_o people_n after_o he_o he_o also_o perish_v and_o all_o even_o as_o many_o as_o obey_v he_o be_v disperse_v 38._o and_o 〈◊〉_d now_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o 〈◊〉_d refrain_v from_o these_o man_n and_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o if_o this_o counsel_n or_o this_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v 〈◊〉_d come_v to_o nought_o paraphrase_n 38._o dismiss_v these_o man_n and_o make_v not_o such_o haste_n to_o proceed_v against_o they_o for_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o preach_v be_v either_o from_o god_n or_o no_o if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o god_n than_o our_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o false_a prophet_n though_o they_o thrive_v a_o while_n yet_o without_o our_o opposition_n they_o general_o come_v to_o nought_o 39_o but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n you_o can_v overthrow_v it_o note_z i_z lest_o haply_o you_o be_v find_v even_o to_o fight_v against_o god_n paraphrase_n 39_o but_o if_o it_o be_v from_o god_n than_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a you_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o lest_o you_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o babel-builder_n like_o those_o giant_n there_o that_o go_v about_o to_o fortify_v themselves_o against_o heaven_n and_o to_o fight_v against_o god_n himself_o and_o you_o will_v never_o prosper_v in_o that_o enterprise_n 40._o and_o to_o he_o they_o agree_v and_o when_o they_o have_v call_v the_o apostle_n and_o beat_v they_o they_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o let_v they_o go_v paraphrase_n 40._o and_o they_o take_v his_o advice_n and_o send_v for_o the_o apostle_n in_o again_o into_o the_o court_n they_o appoint_v they_o to_o be_v scourge_v a_o punishment_n of_o a_o reproachful_a contumelious_a nature_n v._n 41._o and_o give_v they_o charge_v not_o to_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n any_o more_o they_o release_v they_o 41._o and_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o council_n rejoice_v that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d count_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v note_v k_o shame_n for_o his_o name_n paraphrase_n 41._o and_o this_o be_v matter_n of_o comfort_n &_o rejoice_v to_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o that_o of_o mat._n 5._o 12._o that_o they_o be_v advance_v to_o that_o degree_n of_o honour_n and_o blessedness_n as_o to_o be_v scourge_v for_o preach_v of_o christ_n 42._o and_o daily_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o c._n in_o every_o house_n they_o cease_v not_o to_o teach_v and_o preach_v jesus_n christ_n paraphrase_n 42._o and_o they_o divide_v their_o time_n betwixt_o the_o temple_n more_o open_o and_o the_o upper_a room_n more_o private_o and_o continue_v constant_o in_o one_o of_o those_o place_n either_o instruct_v those_o that_o have_v already_o receive_v the_o faith_n or_o preach_v it_o new_a to_o those_o that_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o annotation_n on_o chap._n v._n 〈◊〉_d v._o 3._o fill_v thy_o heart_n the_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o fill_v the_o heart_n be_v use_v by_o the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o to_o make_v one_o bold_a so_o host_n 7._o 5._o who_o have_v fill_v his_o heart_n to_o do_v this_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v it_o that_o have_v dare_v etc._n etc._n so_o eccl._n 8._o 11._o the_o heart_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v fill_v to_o do_v evil_a that_o be_v be_v embolden_v where_o the_o greek_a read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v fill_v 〈◊〉_d ib._n toly_n the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v among_o author_n these_o three_o distinct_a use_n and_o agreeable_o three_o notion_n and_o interpretation_n proportion_v to_o they_o 1._o it_o be_v use_v with_o a_o genitive_a case_n and_o then_o it_o signify_v passive_o to_o be_v deceive_v frustrate_v cheat_v of_o any_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v frustrate_v defeat_v of_o his_o hope_n and_o in_o plato_n apol._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v or_o mistake_v but_o this_o clear_o belong_v not_o to_o this_o place_n 2dly_o it_o be_v use_v with_o a_o dative_n case_n of_o the_o person_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o a_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d join_v to_o the_o person_n and_o then_o it_o be_v absolute_o to_o lie_v so_o it_o be_v here_o v._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thou_o have_v not_o lie_v to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n the_o lie_n which_o thou_o have_v tell_v be_v not_o tell_v to_o man_n only_o or_o be_v not_o injurious_a to_o man_n only_o 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o god_n also_o so_o jam._n 3._o 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o lie_v against_o the_o truth_n your_o lie_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel-doctrine_n and_o temper_n and_o destructive_a to_o it_o so_o col._n 3._o 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lie_v not_o against_o one_o another_o 3dly_o it_o be_v use_v with_o a_o accusative_a case_n of_o the_o person_n again_o and_o then_o it_o signify_v active_o to_o deceive_v rob_v deprive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o herodian_a l._n 2._o have_v deceive_v and_o cheat_v the_o soldier_n and_o in_o aristoph_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d certain_o thou_o shall_v not_o deceive_v or_o cheat_v i_o and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a notion_n of_o it_o here_o in_o this_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o deceive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n deum_n in_o pollicitatione_n fallere_fw-la to_o deceive_v god_n in_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v to_o he_o say_v s._n augustine_n and_o again_o detrahere_fw-la de_fw-la pecunia_fw-la quam_fw-la deo_fw-la voverat_fw-la to_o keep_v back_o some_o of_o the_o money_n which_o he_o have_v devote_v to_o god_n and_o according_o by_o asterius_n ananias_n and_o his_o wife_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n in_o their_o own_o offering_n and_o although_o if_o the_o matter_n speak_v of_o extend_v no_o far_o than_o speak_v a_o false_a thing_n without_o any_o real_a purloin_v or_o steal_v or_o withhold_v what_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o church_n or_o to_o god_n it_o will_v then_o proportionable_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o to_o deceive_v or_o tell_v